The Project Gutenberg EBook of Pictures from Italy, by Charles Dickens (#7 in our series by Charles Dickens) Copyright laws are changing all over the world. Be sure to check the copyright laws for your country before downloading or redistributing this or any other Project Gutenberg eBook. This header should be the first thing seen when viewing this Project Gutenberg file. Please do not remove it. Do not change or edit the header without written permission. Please read the "legal small print," and other information about the eBook and Project Gutenberg at the bottom of this file. Included is important information about your specific rights and restrictions in how the file may be used. You can also find out about how to make a donation to Project Gutenberg, and how to get involved. **Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts** **eBooks Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971** *****These eBooks Were Prepared By Thousands of Volunteers!***** Title: Pictures from Italy Author: Charles Dickens Release Date: September, 1996 [EBook #650] [This file was first posted on September 17, 1996] [Most recently updated: September 2, 2002] Edition: 10 Language: English Character set encoding: ASCII
Transcribed from the 1913 Chapman & Hall, Ltd. edition by David
Price, email ccx074@coventry.ac.uk
PICTURES FROM ITALY
THE READER’S PASSPORT
If the readers of this volume will be so kind as to take their credentials
for the different places which are the subject of its author’s
reminiscences, from the Author himself, perhaps they may visit them,
in fancy, the more agreeably, and with a better understanding of what
they are to expect.
Many books have been written upon Italy, affording many means of studying
the history of that interesting country, and the innumerable associations
entwined about it. I make but little reference to that stock of
information; not at all regarding it as a necessary consequence of my
having had recourse to the storehouse for my own benefit, that I should
reproduce its easily accessible contents before the eyes of my readers.
Neither will there be found, in these pages, any grave examination into
the government or misgovernment of any portion of the country.
No visitor of that beautiful land can fail to have a strong conviction
on the subject; but as I chose when residing there, a Foreigner, to
abstain from the discussion of any such questions with any order of
Italians, so I would rather not enter on the inquiry now. During
my twelve months’ occupation of a house at Genoa, I never found
that authorities constitutionally jealous were distrustful of me; and
I should be sorry to give them occasion to regret their free courtesy,
either to myself or any of my countrymen.
There is, probably, not a famous Picture or Statue in all Italy, but
could be easily buried under a mountain of printed paper devoted to
dissertations on it. I do not, therefore, though an earnest admirer
of Painting and Sculpture, expatiate at any length on famous Pictures
and Statues.
This Book is a series of faint reflections - mere shadows in the water
- of places to which the imaginations of most people are attracted in
a greater or less degree, on which mine had dwelt for years, and which
have some interest for all. The greater part of the descriptions
were written on the spot, and sent home, from time to time, in private
letters. I do not mention the circumstance as an excuse for any
defects they may present, for it would be none; but as a guarantee to
the Reader that they were at least penned in the fulness of the subject,
and with the liveliest impressions of novelty and freshness.
If they have ever a fanciful and idle air, perhaps the reader will suppose
them written in the shade of a Sunny Day, in the midst of the objects
of which they treat, and will like them none the worse for having such
influences of the country upon them.
I hope I am not likely to be misunderstood by Professors of the Roman
Catholic faith, on account of anything contained in these pages.
I have done my best, in one of my former productions, to do justice
to them; and I trust, in this, they will do justice to me. When
I mention any exhibition that impressed me as absurd or disagreeable,
I do not seek to connect it, or recognise it as necessarily connected
with, any essentials of their creed. When I treat of the ceremonies
of the Holy Week, I merely treat of their effect, and do not challenge
the good and learned Dr. Wiseman’s interpretation of their meaning.
When I hint a dislike of nunneries for young girls who abjure the world
before they have ever proved or known it; or doubt the ex officio
sanctity of all Priests and Friars; I do no more than many conscientious
Catholics both abroad and at home.
I have likened these Pictures to shadows in the water, and would fain
hope that I have, nowhere, stirred the water so roughly, as to mar the
shadows. I could never desire to be on better terms with all my
friends than now, when distant mountains rise, once more, in my path.
For I need not hesitate to avow, that, bent on correcting a brief mistake
I made, not long ago, in disturbing the old relations between myself
and my readers, and departing for a moment from my old pursuits, I am
about to resume them, joyfully, in Switzerland; where during another
year of absence, I can at once work out the themes I have now in my
mind, without interruption: and while I keep my English audience within
speaking distance, extend my knowledge of a noble country, inexpressibly
attractive to me. {1}
This book is made as accessible as possible, because it would be a great
pleasure to me if I could hope, through its means, to compare impressions
with some among the multitudes who will hereafter visit the scenes described
with interest and delight.
And I have only now, in passport wise, to sketch my reader’s portrait,
which I hope may be thus supposititiously traced for either sex:
Complexion Fair.
Eyes Very cheerful.
Nose Not supercilious.
Mouth Smiling.
Visage Beaming.
General Expression Extremely agreeable.
CHAPTER I - GOING THROUGH FRANCE
On a fine Sunday morning in the Midsummer time and weather of eighteen
hundred and forty-four, it was, my good friend, when - don’t be
alarmed; not when two travellers might have been observed slowly making
their way over that picturesque and broken ground by which the first
chapter of a Middle Aged novel is usually attained - but when an English
travelling-carriage of considerable proportions, fresh from the shady
halls of the Pantechnicon near Belgrave Square, London, was observed
(by a very small French soldier; for I saw him look at it) to issue
from the gate of the Hôtel Meurice in the Rue Rivoli at Paris.
I am no more bound to explain why the English family travelling by this
carriage, inside and out, should be starting for Italy on a Sunday morning,
of all good days in the week, than I am to assign a reason for all the
little men in France being soldiers, and all the big men postilions;
which is the invariable rule. But, they had some sort of reason
for what they did, I have no doubt; and their reason for being there
at all, was, as you know, that they were going to live in fair Genoa
for a year; and that the head of the family purposed, in that space
of time, to stroll about, wherever his restless humour carried him.
And it would have been small comfort to me to have explained to the
population of Paris generally, that I was that Head and Chief; and not
the radiant embodiment of good humour who sat beside me in the person
of a French Courier - best of servants and most beaming of men!
Truth to say, he looked a great deal more patriarchal than I, who, in
the shadow of his portly presence, dwindled down to no account at all.
There was, of course, very little in the aspect of Paris - as we rattled
near the dismal Morgue and over the Pont Neuf - to reproach us for our
Sunday travelling. The wine-shops (every second house) were driving
a roaring trade; awnings were spreading, and chairs and tables arranging,
outside the cafés, preparatory to the eating of ices, and drinking
of cool liquids, later in the day; shoe-blacks were busy on the bridges;
shops were open; carts and waggons clattered to and fro; the narrow,
up-hill, funnel-like streets across the River, were so many dense perspectives
of crowd and bustle, parti-coloured nightcaps, tobacco-pipes, blouses,
large boots, and shaggy heads of hair; nothing at that hour denoted
a day of rest, unless it were the appearance, here and there, of a family
pleasure-party, crammed into a bulky old lumbering cab; or of some contemplative
holiday-maker in the freest and easiest dishabille, leaning out of a
low garret window, watching the drying of his newly polished shoes on
the little parapet outside (if a gentleman), or the airing of her stockings
in the sun (if a lady), with calm anticipation.
Once clear of the never-to-be-forgotten-or-forgiven pavement which surrounds
Paris, the first three days of travelling towards Marseilles are quiet
and monotonous enough. To Sens. To Avallon. To Chalons.
A sketch of one day’s proceedings is a sketch of all three; and
here it is.
We have four horses, and one postilion, who has a very long whip, and
drives his team, something like the Courier of Saint Petersburgh in
the circle at Astley’s or Franconi’s: only he sits his own
horse instead of standing on him. The immense jack-boots worn
by these postilions, are sometimes a century or two old; and are so
ludicrously disproportionate to the wearer’s foot, that the spur,
which is put where his own heel comes, is generally halfway up the leg
of the boots. The man often comes out of the stable-yard, with
his whip in his hand and his shoes on, and brings out, in both hands,
one boot at a time, which he plants on the ground by the side of his
horse, with great gravity, until everything is ready. When it
is - and oh Heaven! the noise they make about it! - he gets into the
boots, shoes and all, or is hoisted into them by a couple of friends;
adjusts the rope harness, embossed by the labours of innumerable pigeons
in the stables; makes all the horses kick and plunge; cracks his whip
like a madman; shouts ‘En route - Hi!’ and away we go.
He is sure to have a contest with his horse before we have gone very
far; and then he calls him a Thief, and a Brigand, and a Pig, and what
not; and beats him about the head as if he were made of wood.
There is little more than one variety in the appearance of the country,
for the first two days. From a dreary plain, to an interminable
avenue, and from an interminable avenue to a dreary plain again.
Plenty of vines there are in the open fields, but of a short low kind,
and not trained in festoons, but about straight sticks. Beggars
innumerable there are, everywhere; but an extraordinarily scanty population,
and fewer children than I ever encountered. I don’t believe
we saw a hundred children between Paris and Chalons. Queer old
towns, draw-bridged and walled: with odd little towers at the angles,
like grotesque faces, as if the wall had put a mask on, and were staring
down into the moat; other strange little towers, in gardens and fields,
and down lanes, and in farm-yards: all alone, and always round, with
a peaked roof, and never used for any purpose at all; ruinous buildings
of all sorts; sometimes an hôtel de ville, sometimes a guard-house,
sometimes a dwelling-house, sometimes a château with a rank garden,
prolific in dandelion, and watched over by extinguisher-topped turrets,
and blink-eyed little casements; are the standard objects, repeated
over and over again. Sometimes we pass a village inn, with a crumbling
wall belonging to it, and a perfect town of out-houses; and painted
over the gateway, ‘Stabling for Sixty Horses;’ as indeed
there might be stabling for sixty score, were there any horses to be
stabled there, or anybody resting there, or anything stirring about
the place but a dangling bush, indicative of the wine inside: which
flutters idly in the wind, in lazy keeping with everything else, and
certainly is never in a green old age, though always so old as to be
dropping to pieces. And all day long, strange little narrow waggons,
in strings of six or eight, bringing cheese from Switzerland, and frequently
in charge, the whole line, of one man, or even boy - and he very often
asleep in the foremost cart - come jingling past: the horses drowsily
ringing the bells upon their harness, and looking as if they thought
(no doubt they do) their great blue woolly furniture, of immense weight
and thickness, with a pair of grotesque horns growing out of the collar,
very much too warm for the Midsummer weather.
Then, there is the Diligence, twice or thrice a-day; with the dusty
outsides in blue frocks, like butchers; and the insides in white nightcaps;
and its cabriolet head on the roof, nodding and shaking, like an idiot’s
head; and its Young-France passengers staring out of window, with beards
down to their waists, and blue spectacles awfully shading their warlike
eyes, and very big sticks clenched in their National grasp. Also
the Malle Poste, with only a couple of passengers, tearing along at
a real good dare-devil pace, and out of sight in no time. Steady
old Curés come jolting past, now and then, in such ramshackle,
rusty, musty, clattering coaches as no Englishman would believe in;
and bony women dawdle about in solitary places, holding cows by ropes
while they feed, or digging and hoeing or doing field-work of a more
laborious kind, or representing real shepherdesses with their flocks
- to obtain an adequate idea of which pursuit and its followers, in
any country, it is only necessary to take any pastoral poem, or picture,
and imagine to yourself whatever is most exquisitely and widely unlike
the descriptions therein contained.
You have been travelling along, stupidly enough, as you generally do
in the last stage of the day; and the ninety-six bells upon the horses
- twenty-four apiece - have been ringing sleepily in your ears for half
an hour or so; and it has become a very jog-trot, monotonous, tiresome
sort of business; and you have been thinking deeply about the dinner
you will have at the next stage; when, down at the end of the long avenue
of trees through which you are travelling, the first indication of a
town appears, in the shape of some straggling cottages: and the carriage
begins to rattle and roll over a horribly uneven pavement. As
if the equipage were a great firework, and the mere sight of a smoking
cottage chimney had lighted it, instantly it begins to crack and splutter,
as if the very devil were in it. Crack, crack, crack, crack.
Crack-crack-crack. Crick-crack. Crick-crack. Helo!
Hola! Vite! Voleur! Brigand! Hi hi hi!
En r-r-r-r-r-route! Whip, wheels, driver, stones, beggars, children,
crack, crack, crack; helo! hola! charité pour l’amour de
Dieu! crick-crack-crick-crack; crick, crick, crick; bump, jolt, crack,
bump, crick-crack; round the corner, up the narrow street, down the
paved hill on the other side; in the gutter; bump, bump; jolt, jog,
crick, crick, crick; crack, crack, crack; into the shop-windows on the
left-hand side of the street, preliminary to a sweeping turn into the
wooden archway on the right; rumble, rumble, rumble; clatter, clatter,
clatter; crick, crick, crick; and here we are in the yard of the Hôtel
de l’Ecu d’Or; used up, gone out, smoking, spent, exhausted;
but sometimes making a false start unexpectedly, with nothing coming
of it - like a firework to the last!
The landlady of the Hôtel de l’Ecu d’Or is here; and
the landlord of the Hôtel de l’Ecu d’Or is here; and
the femme de chambre of the Hôtel de l’Ecu d’Or is
here; and a gentleman in a glazed cap, with a red beard like a bosom
friend, who is staying at the Hôtel de l’Ecu d’Or,
is here; and Monsieur le Curé is walking up and down in a corner
of the yard by himself, with a shovel hat upon his head, and a black
gown on his back, and a book in one hand, and an umbrella in the other;
and everybody, except Monsieur le Curé, is open-mouthed and open-eyed,
for the opening of the carriage-door. The landlord of the Hôtel
de l’Ecu d’Or, dotes to that extent upon the Courier, that
he can hardly wait for his coming down from the box, but embraces his
very legs and boot-heels as he descends. ‘My Courier!
My brave Courier! My friend! My brother!’ The
landlady loves him, the femme de chambre blesses him, the garçon
worships him. The Courier asks if his letter has been received?
It has, it has. Are the rooms prepared? They are, they are.
The best rooms for my noble Courier. The rooms of state for my
gallant Courier; the whole house is at the service of my best of friends!
He keeps his hand upon the carriage-door, and asks some other question
to enhance the expectation. He carries a green leathern purse
outside his coat, suspended by a belt. The idlers look at it;
one touches it. It is full of five-franc pieces. Murmurs
of admiration are heard among the boys. The landlord falls upon
the Courier’s neck, and folds him to his breast. He is so
much fatter than he was, he says! He looks so rosy and so well!
The door is opened. Breathless expectation. The lady of
the family gets out. Ah sweet lady! Beautiful lady!
The sister of the lady of the family gets out. Great Heaven, Ma’amselle
is charming! First little boy gets out. Ah, what a beautiful
little boy! First little girl gets out. Oh, but this is
an enchanting child! Second little girl gets out. The landlady,
yielding to the finest impulse of our common nature, catches her up
in her arms! Second little boy gets out. Oh, the sweet boy!
Oh, the tender little family! The baby is handed out. Angelic
baby! The baby has topped everything. All the rapture is
expended on the baby! Then the two nurses tumble out; and the
enthusiasm swelling into madness, the whole family are swept up-stairs
as on a cloud; while the idlers press about the carriage, and look into
it, and walk round it, and touch it. For it is something to touch
a carriage that has held so many people. It is a legacy to leave
one’s children.
The rooms are on the first floor, except the nursery for the night,
which is a great rambling chamber, with four or five beds in it: through
a dark passage, up two steps, down four, past a pump, across a balcony,
and next door to the stable. The other sleeping apartments are
large and lofty; each with two small bedsteads, tastefully hung, like
the windows, with red and white drapery. The sitting-room is famous.
Dinner is already laid in it for three; and the napkins are folded in
cocked-hat fashion. The floors are of red tile. There are
no carpets, and not much furniture to speak of; but there is abundance
of looking-glass, and there are large vases under glass shades, filled
with artificial flowers; and there are plenty of clocks. The whole
party are in motion. The brave Courier, in particular, is everywhere:
looking after the beds, having wine poured down his throat by his dear
brother the landlord, and picking up green cucumbers - always cucumbers;
Heaven knows where he gets them - with which he walks about, one in
each hand, like truncheons.
Dinner is announced. There is very thin soup; there are very large
loaves - one apiece; a fish; four dishes afterwards; some poultry afterwards;
a dessert afterwards; and no lack of wine. There is not much in
the dishes; but they are very good, and always ready instantly.
When it is nearly dark, the brave Courier, having eaten the two cucumbers,
sliced up in the contents of a pretty large decanter of oil, and another
of vinegar, emerges from his retreat below, and proposes a visit to
the Cathedral, whose massive tower frowns down upon the court-yard of
the inn. Off we go; and very solemn and grand it is, in the dim
light: so dim at last, that the polite, old, lanthorn-jawed Sacristan
has a feeble little bit of candle in his hand, to grope among the tombs
with - and looks among the grim columns, very like a lost ghost who
is searching for his own.
Underneath the balcony, when we return, the inferior servants of the
inn are supping in the open air, at a great table; the dish, a stew
of meat and vegetables, smoking hot, and served in the iron cauldron
it was boiled in. They have a pitcher of thin wine, and are very
merry; merrier than the gentleman with the red beard, who is playing
billiards in the light room on the left of the yard, where shadows,
with cues in their hands, and cigars in their mouths, cross and recross
the window, constantly. Still the thin Curé walks up and
down alone, with his book and umbrella. And there he walks, and
there the billiard-balls rattle, long after we are fast asleep.
We are astir at six next morning. It is a delightful day, shaming
yesterday’s mud upon the carriage, if anything could shame a carriage,
in a land where carriages are never cleaned. Everybody is brisk;
and as we finish breakfast, the horses come jingling into the yard from
the Post-house. Everything taken out of the carriage is put back
again. The brave Courier announces that all is ready, after walking
into every room, and looking all round it, to be certain that nothing
is left behind. Everybody gets in. Everybody connected with
the Hôtel de l’Ecu d’Or is again enchanted.
The brave Courier runs into the house for a parcel containing cold fowl,
sliced ham, bread, and biscuits, for lunch; hands it into the coach;
and runs back again.
What has he got in his hand now? More cucumbers? No.
A long strip of paper. It’s the bill.
The brave Courier has two belts on, this morning: one supporting the
purse: another, a mighty good sort of leathern bottle, filled to the
throat with the best light Bordeaux wine in the house. He never
pays the bill till this bottle is full. Then he disputes it.
He disputes it now, violently. He is still the landlord’s
brother, but by another father or mother. He is not so nearly
related to him as he was last night. The landlord scratches his
head. The brave Courier points to certain figures in the bill,
and intimates that if they remain there, the Hôtel de l’Ecu
d’Or is thenceforth and for ever an hôtel de l’Ecu
de cuivre. The landlord goes into a little counting-house.
The brave Courier follows, forces the bill and a pen into his hand,
and talks more rapidly than ever. The landlord takes the pen.
The Courier smiles. The landlord makes an alteration. The
Courier cuts a joke. The landlord is affectionate, but not weakly
so. He bears it like a man. He shakes hands with his brave
brother, but he don’t hug him. Still, he loves his brother;
for he knows that he will be returning that way, one of these fine days,
with another family, and he foresees that his heart will yearn towards
him again. The brave Courier traverses all round the carriage
once, looks at the drag, inspects the wheels, jumps up, gives the word,
and away we go!
It is market morning. The market is held in the little square
outside in front of the cathedral. It is crowded with men and
women, in blue, in red, in green, in white; with canvassed stalls; and
fluttering merchandise. The country people are grouped about,
with their clean baskets before them. Here, the lace-sellers;
there, the butter and egg-sellers; there, the fruit-sellers; there,
the shoe-makers. The whole place looks as if it were the stage
of some great theatre, and the curtain had just run up, for a picturesque
ballet. And there is the cathedral to boot: scene-like: all grim,
and swarthy, and mouldering, and cold: just splashing the pavement in
one place with faint purple drops, as the morning sun, entering by a
little window on the eastern side, struggles through some stained glass
panes, on the western.
In five minutes we have passed the iron cross, with a little ragged
kneeling-place of turf before it, in the outskirts of the town; and
are again upon the road.
CHAPTER II - LYONS, THE RHONE, AND THE GOBLIN OF AVIGNON
Chalons is a fair resting-place, in right of its good inn on the bank
of the river, and the little steamboats, gay with green and red paint,
that come and go upon it: which make up a pleasant and refreshing scene,
after the dusty roads. But, unless you would like to dwell on
an enormous plain, with jagged rows of irregular poplars on it, that
look in the distance like so many combs with broken teeth: and unless
you would like to pass your life without the possibility of going up-hill,
or going up anything but stairs: you would hardly approve of Chalons
as a place of residence.
You would probably like it better, however, than Lyons: which you may
reach, if you will, in one of the before-mentioned steamboats, in eight
hours.
What a city Lyons is! Talk about people feeling, at certain unlucky
times, as if they had tumbled from the clouds! Here is a whole
town that is tumbled, anyhow, out of the sky; having been first caught
up, like other stones that tumble down from that region, out of fens
and barren places, dismal to behold! The two great streets through
which the two great rivers dash, and all the little streets whose name
is Legion, were scorching, blistering, and sweltering. The houses,
high and vast, dirty to excess, rotten as old cheeses, and as thickly
peopled. All up the hills that hem the city in, these houses swarm;
and the mites inside were lolling out of the windows, and drying their
ragged clothes on poles, and crawling in and out at the doors, and coming
out to pant and gasp upon the pavement, and creeping in and out among
huge piles and bales of fusty, musty, stifling goods; and living, or
rather not dying till their time should come, in an exhausted receiver.
Every manufacturing town, melted into one, would hardly convey an impression
of Lyons as it presented itself to me: for all the undrained, unscavengered
qualities of a foreign town, seemed grafted, there, upon the native
miseries of a manufacturing one; and it bears such fruit as I would
go some miles out of my way to avoid encountering again.
In the cool of the evening: or rather in the faded heat of the day:
we went to see the Cathedral, where divers old women, and a few dogs,
were engaged in contemplation. There was no difference, in point
of cleanliness, between its stone pavement and that of the streets;
and there was a wax saint, in a little box like a berth aboard ship,
with a glass front to it, whom Madame Tussaud would have nothing to
say to, on any terms, and which even Westminster Abbey might be ashamed
of. If you would know all about the architecture of this church,
or any other, its dates, dimensions, endowments, and history, is it
not written in Mr. Murray’s Guide-Book, and may you not read it
there, with thanks to him, as I did!
For this reason, I should abstain from mentioning the curious clock
in Lyons Cathedral, if it were not for a small mistake I made, in connection
with that piece of mechanism. The keeper of the church was very
anxious it should be shown; partly for the honour of the establishment
and the town; and partly, perhaps, because of his deriving a percentage
from the additional consideration. However that may be, it was
set in motion, and thereupon a host of little doors flew open, and innumerable
little figures staggered out of them, and jerked themselves back again,
with that special unsteadiness of purpose, and hitching in the gait,
which usually attaches to figures that are moved by clock-work.
Meanwhile, the Sacristan stood explaining these wonders, and pointing
them out, severally, with a wand. There was a centre puppet of
the Virgin Mary; and close to her, a small pigeon-hole, out of which
another and a very ill-looking puppet made one of the most sudden plunges
I ever saw accomplished: instantly flopping back again at sight of her,
and banging his little door violently after him. Taking this to
be emblematic of the victory over Sin and Death, and not at all unwilling
to show that I perfectly understood the subject, in anticipation of
the showman, I rashly said, ‘Aha! The Evil Spirit.
To be sure. He is very soon disposed of.’ ‘Pardon,
Monsieur,’ said the Sacristan, with a polite motion of his hand
towards the little door, as if introducing somebody - ‘The Angel
Gabriel!’
Soon after daybreak next morning, we were steaming down the Arrowy Rhone,
at the rate of twenty miles an hour, in a very dirty vessel full of
merchandise, and with only three or four other passengers for our companions:
among whom, the most remarkable was a silly, old, meek-faced, garlic-eating,
immeasurably polite Chevalier, with a dirty scrap of red ribbon hanging
at his button-hole, as if he had tied it there to remind himself of
something; as Tom Noddy, in the farce, ties knots in his pocket-handkerchief.
For the last two days, we had seen great sullen hills, the first indications
of the Alps, lowering in the distance. Now, we were rushing on
beside them: sometimes close beside them: sometimes with an intervening
slope, covered with vineyards. Villages and small towns hanging
in mid-air, with great woods of olives seen through the light open towers
of their churches, and clouds moving slowly on, upon the steep acclivity
behind them; ruined castles perched on every eminence; and scattered
houses in the clefts and gullies of the hills; made it very beautiful.
The great height of these, too, making the buildings look so tiny, that
they had all the charm of elegant models; their excessive whiteness,
as contrasted with the brown rocks, or the sombre, deep, dull, heavy
green of the olive-tree; and the puny size, and little slow walk of
the Lilliputian men and women on the bank; made a charming picture.
There were ferries out of number, too; bridges; the famous Pont d’Esprit,
with I don’t know how many arches; towns where memorable wines
are made; Vallence, where Napoleon studied; and the noble river, bringing
at every winding turn, new beauties into view.
There lay before us, that same afternoon, the broken bridge of Avignon,
and all the city baking in the sun; yet with an under-done-pie-crust,
battlemented wall, that never will be brown, though it bake for centuries.
The grapes were hanging in clusters in the streets, and the brilliant
Oleander was in full bloom everywhere. The streets are old and
very narrow, but tolerably clean, and shaded by awnings stretched from
house to house. Bright stuffs and handkerchiefs, curiosities,
ancient frames of carved wood, old chairs, ghostly tables, saints, virgins,
angels, and staring daubs of portraits, being exposed for sale beneath,
it was very quaint and lively. All this was much set off, too,
by the glimpses one caught, through a rusty gate standing ajar, of quiet
sleepy court-yards, having stately old houses within, as silent as tombs.
It was all very like one of the descriptions in the Arabian Nights.
The three one-eyed Calenders might have knocked at any one of those
doors till the street rang again, and the porter who persisted in asking
questions - the man who had the delicious purchases put into his basket
in the morning - might have opened it quite naturally.
After breakfast next morning, we sallied forth to see the lions.
Such a delicious breeze was blowing in, from the north, as made the
walk delightful: though the pavement-stones, and stones of the walls
and houses, were far too hot to have a hand laid on them comfortably.
We went, first of all, up a rocky height, to the cathedral: where Mass
was performing to an auditory very like that of Lyons, namely, several
old women, a baby, and a very self-possessed dog, who had marked out
for himself a little course or platform for exercise, beginning at the
altar-rails and ending at the door, up and down which constitutional
walk he trotted, during the service, as methodically and calmly, as
any old gentleman out of doors.
It is a bare old church, and the paintings in the roof are sadly defaced
by time and damp weather; but the sun was shining in, splendidly, through
the red curtains of the windows, and glittering on the altar furniture;
and it looked as bright and cheerful as need be.
Going apart, in this church, to see some painting which was being executed
in fresco by a French artist and his pupil, I was led to observe more
closely than I might otherwise have done, a great number of votive offerings
with which the walls of the different chapels were profusely hung.
I will not say decorated, for they were very roughly and comically got
up; most likely by poor sign-painters, who eke out their living in that
way. They were all little pictures: each representing some sickness
or calamity from which the person placing it there, had escaped, through
the interposition of his or her patron saint, or of the Madonna; and
I may refer to them as good specimens of the class generally.
They are abundant in Italy.
In a grotesque squareness of outline, and impossibility of perspective,
they are not unlike the woodcuts in old books; but they were oil-paintings,
and the artist, like the painter of the Primrose family, had not been
sparing of his colours. In one, a lady was having a toe amputated
- an operation which a saintly personage had sailed into the room, upon
a couch, to superintend. In another, a lady was lying in bed,
tucked up very tight and prim, and staring with much composure at a
tripod, with a slop-basin on it; the usual form of washing-stand, and
the only piece of furniture, besides the bedstead, in her chamber.
One would never have supposed her to be labouring under any complaint,
beyond the inconvenience of being miraculously wide awake, if the painter
had not hit upon the idea of putting all her family on their knees in
one corner, with their legs sticking out behind them on the floor, like
boot-trees. Above whom, the Virgin, on a kind of blue divan, promised
to restore the patient. In another case, a lady was in the very
act of being run over, immediately outside the city walls, by a sort
of piano-forte van. But the Madonna was there again. Whether
the supernatural appearance had startled the horse (a bay griffin),
or whether it was invisible to him, I don’t know; but he was galloping
away, ding dong, without the smallest reverence or compunction.
On every picture ‘Ex voto’ was painted in yellow capitals
in the sky.
Though votive offerings were not unknown in Pagan Temples, and are evidently
among the many compromises made between the false religion and the true,
when the true was in its infancy, I could wish that all the other compromises
were as harmless. Gratitude and Devotion are Christian qualities;
and a grateful, humble, Christian spirit may dictate the observance.
Hard by the cathedral stands the ancient Palace of the Popes, of which
one portion is now a common jail, and another a noisy barrack: while
gloomy suites of state apartments, shut up and deserted, mock their
own old state and glory, like the embalmed bodies of kings. But
we neither went there, to see state rooms, nor soldiers’ quarters,
nor a common jail, though we dropped some money into a prisoners’
box outside, whilst the prisoners, themselves, looked through the iron
bars, high up, and watched us eagerly. We went to see the ruins
of the dreadful rooms in which the Inquisition used to sit.
A little, old, swarthy woman, with a pair of flashing black eyes, -
proof that the world hadn’t conjured down the devil within her,
though it had had between sixty and seventy years to do it in, - came
out of the Barrack Cabaret, of which she was the keeper, with some large
keys in her hands, and marshalled us the way that we should go.
How she told us, on the way, that she was a Government Officer (concierge
du palais a apostolique), and had been, for I don’t
know how many years; and how she had shown these dungeons to princes;
and how she was the best of dungeon demonstrators; and how she had resided
in the palace from an infant, - had been born there, if I recollect
right, - I needn’t relate. But such a fierce, little, rapid,
sparkling, energetic she-devil I never beheld. She was alight
and flaming, all the time. Her action was violent in the extreme.
She never spoke, without stopping expressly for the purpose. She
stamped her feet, clutched us by the arms, flung herself into attitudes,
hammered against walls with her keys, for mere emphasis: now whispered
as if the Inquisition were there still: now shrieked as if she were
on the rack herself; and had a mysterious, hag-like way with her forefinger,
when approaching the remains of some new horror - looking back and walking
stealthily, and making horrible grimaces - that might alone have qualified
her to walk up and down a sick man’s counterpane, to the exclusion
of all other figures, through a whole fever.
Passing through the court-yard, among groups of idle soldiers, we turned
off by a gate, which this She-Goblin unlocked for our admission, and
locked again behind us: and entered a narrow court, rendered narrower
by fallen stones and heaps of rubbish; part of it choking up the mouth
of a ruined subterranean passage, that once communicated (or is said
to have done so) with another castle on the opposite bank of the river.
Close to this court-yard is a dungeon - we stood within it, in another
minute - in the dismal tower des oubliettes, where Rienzi was
imprisoned, fastened by an iron chain to the very wall that stands there
now, but shut out from the sky which now looks down into it. A
few steps brought us to the Cachots, in which the prisoners of the Inquisition
were confined for forty-eight hours after their capture, without food
or drink, that their constancy might be shaken, even before they were
confronted with their gloomy judges. The day has not got in there
yet. They are still small cells, shut in by four unyielding, close,
hard walls; still profoundly dark; still massively doored and fastened,
as of old.
Goblin, looking back as I have described, went softly on, into a vaulted
chamber, now used as a store-room: once the chapel of the Holy Office.
The place where the tribunal sat, was plain. The platform might
have been removed but yesterday. Conceive the parable of the Good
Samaritan having been painted on the wall of one of these Inquisition
chambers! But it was, and may be traced there yet.
High up in the jealous wall, are niches where the faltering replies
of the accused were heard and noted down. Many of them had been
brought out of the very cell we had just looked into, so awfully; along
the same stone passage. We had trodden in their very footsteps.
I am gazing round me, with the horror that the place inspires, when
Goblin clutches me by the wrist, and lays, not her skinny finger, but
the handle of a key, upon her lip. She invites me, with a jerk,
to follow her. I do so. She leads me out into a room adjoining
- a rugged room, with a funnel-shaped, contracting roof, open at the
top, to the bright day. I ask her what it is. She folds
her arms, leers hideously, and stares. I ask again. She
glances round, to see that all the little company are there; sits down
upon a mound of stones; throws up her arms, and yells out, like a fiend,
‘La Salle de la Question!’
The Chamber of Torture! And the roof was made of that shape to
stifle the victim’s cries! Oh Goblin, Goblin, let us think
of this awhile, in silence. Peace, Goblin! Sit with your
short arms crossed on your short legs, upon that heap of stones, for
only five minutes, and then flame out again.
Minutes! Seconds are not marked upon the Palace clock, when, with
her eyes flashing fire, Goblin is up, in the middle of the chamber,
describing, with her sunburnt arms, a wheel of heavy blows. Thus
it ran round! cries Goblin. Mash, mash, mash! An endless
routine of heavy hammers. Mash, mash, mash! upon the sufferer’s
limbs. See the stone trough! says Goblin. For the water
torture! Gurgle, swill, bloat, burst, for the Redeemer’s
honour! Suck the bloody rag, deep down into your unbelieving body,
Heretic, at every breath you draw! And when the executioner plucks
it out, reeking with the smaller mysteries of God’s own Image,
know us for His chosen servants, true believers in the Sermon on the
Mount, elect disciples of Him who never did a miracle but to heal: who
never struck a man with palsy, blindness, deafness, dumbness, madness,
any one affliction of mankind; and never stretched His blessed hand
out, but to give relief and ease!
See! cries Goblin. There the furnace was. There they made
the irons red-hot. Those holes supported the sharp stake, on which
the tortured persons hung poised: dangling with their whole weight from
the roof. ‘But;’ and Goblin whispers this; ‘Monsieur
has heard of this tower? Yes? Let Monsieur look down, then!’
A cold air, laden with an earthy smell, falls upon the face of Monsieur;
for she has opened, while speaking, a trap-door in the wall. Monsieur
looks in. Downward to the bottom, upward to the top, of a steep,
dark, lofty tower: very dismal, very dark, very cold. The Executioner
of the Inquisition, says Goblin, edging in her head to look down also,
flung those who were past all further torturing, down here. ‘But
look! does Monsieur see the black stains on the wall?’ A
glance, over his shoulder, at Goblin’s keen eye, shows Monsieur
- and would without the aid of the directing key - where they are.
‘What are they?’ ‘Blood!’
In October, 1791, when the Revolution was at its height here, sixty
persons: men and women (‘and priests,’ says Goblin, ‘priests’):
were murdered, and hurled, the dying and the dead, into this dreadful
pit, where a quantity of quick-lime was tumbled down upon their bodies.
Those ghastly tokens of the massacre were soon no more; but while one
stone of the strong building in which the deed was done, remains upon
another, there they will lie in the memories of men, as plain to see
as the splashing of their blood upon the wall is now.
Was it a portion of the great scheme of Retribution, that the cruel
deed should be committed in this place! That a part of the atrocities
and monstrous institutions, which had been, for scores of years, at
work, to change men’s nature, should in its last service, tempt
them with the ready means of gratifying their furious and beastly rage!
Should enable them to show themselves, in the height of their frenzy,
no worse than a great, solemn, legal establishment, in the height of
its power! No worse! Much better. They used the Tower
of the Forgotten, in the name of Liberty - their liberty; an earth-born
creature, nursed in the black mud of the Bastile moats and dungeons,
and necessarily betraying many evidences of its unwholesome bringing-up
- but the Inquisition used it in the name of Heaven.
Goblin’s finger is lifted; and she steals out again, into the
Chapel of the Holy Office. She stops at a certain part of the
flooring. Her great effect is at hand. She waits for the
rest. She darts at the brave Courier, who is explaining something;
hits him a sounding rap on the hat with the largest key; and bids him
be silent. She assembles us all, round a little trap-door in the
floor, as round a grave.
‘Voilà!’ she darts down at the ring, and flings the
door open with a crash, in her goblin energy, though it is no light
weight. ‘Voilà les oubliettes! Voilà
les oubliettes! Subterranean! Frightful! Black! Terrible!
Deadly! Les oubliettes de l’Inquisition!’
My blood ran cold, as I looked from Goblin, down into the vaults, where
these forgotten creatures, with recollections of the world outside:
of wives, friends, children, brothers: starved to death, and made the
stones ring with their unavailing groans. But, the thrill I felt
on seeing the accursed wall below, decayed and broken through, and the
sun shining in through its gaping wounds, was like a sense of victory
and triumph. I felt exalted with the proud delight of living in
these degenerate times, to see it. As if I were the hero of some
high achievement! The light in the doleful vaults was typical
of the light that has streamed in, on all persecution in God’s
name, but which is not yet at its noon! It cannot look more lovely
to a blind man newly restored to sight, than to a traveller who sees
it, calmly and majestically, treading down the darkness of that Infernal
Well.
CHAPTER III - AVIGNON TO GENOA
Goblin, having shown les oubliettes, felt that her great coup
was struck. She let the door fall with a crash, and stood upon
it with her arms a-kimbo, sniffing prodigiously.
When we left the place, I accompanied her into her house, under the
outer gateway of the fortress, to buy a little history of the building.
Her cabaret, a dark, low room, lighted by small windows, sunk in the
thick wall - in the softened light, and with its forge-like chimney;
its little counter by the door, with bottles, jars, and glasses on it;
its household implements and scraps of dress against the wall; and a
sober-looking woman (she must have a congenial life of it, with Goblin,)
knitting at the door - looked exactly like a picture by OSTADE.
I walked round the building on the outside, in a sort of dream, and
yet with the delightful sense of having awakened from it, of which the
light, down in the vaults, had given me the assurance. The immense
thickness and giddy height of the walls, the enormous strength of the
massive towers, the great extent of the building, its gigantic proportions,
frowning aspect, and barbarous irregularity, awaken awe and wonder.
The recollection of its opposite old uses: an impregnable fortress,
a luxurious palace, a horrible prison, a place of torture, the court
of the Inquisition: at one and the same time, a house of feasting, fighting,
religion, and blood: gives to every stone in its huge form a fearful
interest, and imparts new meaning to its incongruities. I could
think of little, however, then, or long afterwards, but the sun in the
dungeons. The palace coming down to be the lounging-place of noisy
soldiers, and being forced to echo their rough talk, and common oaths,
and to have their garments fluttering from its dirty windows, was some
reduction of its state, and something to rejoice at; but the day in
its cells, and the sky for the roof of its chambers of cruelty - that
was its desolation and defeat! If I had seen it in a blaze from
ditch to rampart, I should have felt that not that light, nor all the
light in all the fire that burns, could waste it, like the sunbeams
in its secret council-chamber, and its prisons.
Before I quit this Palace of the Popes, let me translate from the little
history I mentioned just now, a short anecdote, quite appropriate to
itself, connected with its adventures.
‘An ancient tradition relates, that in 1441, a nephew of Pierre
de Lude, the Pope’s legate, seriously insulted some distinguished
ladies of Avignon, whose relations, in revenge, seized the young man,
and horribly mutilated him. For several years the legate kept
his revenge within his own breast, but he was not the less resolved
upon its gratification at last. He even made, in the fulness of
time, advances towards a complete reconciliation; and when their apparent
sincerity had prevailed, he invited to a splendid banquet, in this palace,
certain families, whole families, whom he sought to exterminate.
The utmost gaiety animated the repast; but the measures of the legate
were well taken. When the dessert was on the board, a Swiss presented
himself, with the announcement that a strange ambassador solicited an
extraordinary audience. The legate, excusing himself, for the
moment, to his guests, retired, followed by his officers. Within
a few minutes afterwards, five hundred persons were reduced to ashes:
the whole of that wing of the building having been blown into the air
with a terrible explosion!’
After seeing the churches (I will not trouble you with churches just
now), we left Avignon that afternoon. The heat being very great,
the roads outside the walls were strewn with people fast asleep in every
little slip of shade, and with lazy groups, half asleep and half awake,
who were waiting until the sun should be low enough to admit of their
playing bowls among the burnt-up trees, and on the dusty road.
The harvest here was already gathered in, and mules and horses were
treading out the corn in the fields. We came, at dusk, upon a
wild and hilly country, once famous for brigands; and travelled slowly
up a steep ascent. So we went on, until eleven at night, when
we halted at the town of Aix (within two stages of Marseilles) to sleep.
The hotel, with all the blinds and shutters closed to keep the light
and heat out, was comfortable and airy next morning, and the town was
very clean; but so hot, and so intensely light, that when I walked out
at noon it was like coming suddenly from the darkened room into crisp
blue fire. The air was so very clear, that distant hills and rocky
points appeared within an hour’s walk; while the town immediately
at hand - with a kind of blue wind between me and it - seemed to be
white hot, and to be throwing off a fiery air from the surface.
We left this town towards evening, and took the road to Marseilles.
A dusty road it was; the houses shut up close; and the vines powdered
white. At nearly all the cottage doors, women were peeling and
slicing onions into earthen bowls for supper. So they had been
doing last night all the way from Avignon. We passed one or two
shady dark châteaux, surrounded by trees, and embellished with
cool basins of water: which were the more refreshing to behold, from
the great scarcity of such residences on the road we had travelled.
As we approached Marseilles, the road began to be covered with holiday
people. Outside the public-houses were parties smoking, drinking,
playing draughts and cards, and (once) dancing. But dust, dust,
dust, everywhere. We went on, through a long, straggling, dirty
suburb, thronged with people; having on our left a dreary slope of land,
on which the country-houses of the Marseilles merchants, always staring
white, are jumbled and heaped without the slightest order: backs, fronts,
sides, and gables towards all points of the compass; until, at last,
we entered the town.
I was there, twice or thrice afterwards, in fair weather and foul; and
I am afraid there is no doubt that it is a dirty and disagreeable place.
But the prospect, from the fortified heights, of the beautiful Mediterranean,
with its lovely rocks and islands, is most delightful. These heights
are a desirable retreat, for less picturesque reasons - as an escape
from a compound of vile smells perpetually arising from a great harbour
full of stagnant water, and befouled by the refuse of innumerable ships
with all sorts of cargoes: which, in hot weather, is dreadful in the
last degree.
There were foreign sailors, of all nations, in the streets; with red
shirts, blue shirts, buff shirts, tawny shirts, and shirts of orange
colour; with red caps, blue caps, green caps, great beards, and no beards;
in Turkish turbans, glazed English hats, and Neapolitan head-dresses.
There were the townspeople sitting in clusters on the pavement, or airing
themselves on the tops of their houses, or walking up and down the closest
and least airy of Boulevards; and there were crowds of fierce-looking
people of the lower sort, blocking up the way, constantly. In
the very heart of all this stir and uproar, was the common madhouse;
a low, contracted, miserable building, looking straight upon the street,
without the smallest screen or court-yard; where chattering mad-men
and mad-women were peeping out, through rusty bars, at the staring faces
below, while the sun, darting fiercely aslant into their little cells,
seemed to dry up their brains, and worry them, as if they were baited
by a pack of dogs.
We were pretty well accommodated at the Hôtel du Paradis, situated
in a narrow street of very high houses, with a hairdresser’s shop
opposite, exhibiting in one of its windows two full-length waxen ladies,
twirling round and round: which so enchanted the hairdresser himself,
that he and his family sat in arm-chairs, and in cool undresses, on
the pavement outside, enjoying the gratification of the passers-by,
with lazy dignity. The family had retired to rest when we went
to bed, at midnight; but the hairdresser (a corpulent man, in drab slippers)
was still sitting there, with his legs stretched out before him, and
evidently couldn’t bear to have the shutters put up.
Next day we went down to the harbour, where the sailors of all nations
were discharging and taking in cargoes of all kinds: fruits, wines,
oils, silks, stuffs, velvets, and every manner of merchandise.
Taking one of a great number of lively little boats with gay-striped
awnings, we rowed away, under the sterns of great ships, under tow-ropes
and cables, against and among other boats, and very much too near the
sides of vessels that were faint with oranges, to the Marie Antoinette,
a handsome steamer bound for Genoa, lying near the mouth of the harbour.
By-and-by, the carriage, that unwieldy ‘trifle from the Pantechnicon,’
on a flat barge, bumping against everything, and giving occasion for
a prodigious quantity of oaths and grimaces, came stupidly alongside;
and by five o’clock we were steaming out in the open sea.
The vessel was beautifully clean; the meals were served under an awning
on deck; the night was calm and clear; the quiet beauty of the sea and
sky unspeakable.
We were off Nice, early next morning, and coasted along, within a few
miles of the Cornice road (of which more in its place) nearly all day.
We could see Genoa before three; and watching it as it gradually developed
its splendid amphitheatre, terrace rising above terrace, garden above
garden, palace above palace, height upon height, was ample occupation
for us, till we ran into the stately harbour. Having been duly
astonished, here, by the sight of a few Cappucini monks, who were watching
the fair-weighing of some wood upon the wharf, we drove off to Albaro,
two miles distant, where we had engaged a house.
The way lay through the main streets, but not through the Strada Nuova,
or the Strada Balbi, which are the famous streets of palaces.
I never in my life was so dismayed! The wonderful novelty of everything,
the unusual smells, the unaccountable filth (though it is reckoned the
cleanest of Italian towns), the disorderly jumbling of dirty houses,
one upon the roof of another; the passages more squalid and more close
than any in St. Giles’s or old Paris; in and out of which, not
vagabonds, but well-dressed women, with white veils and great fans,
were passing and repassing; the perfect absence of resemblance in any
dwelling-house, or shop, or wall, or post, or pillar, to anything one
had ever seen before; and the disheartening dirt, discomfort, and decay;
perfectly confounded me. I fell into a dismal reverie. I
am conscious of a feverish and bewildered vision of saints and virgins’
shrines at the street corners - of great numbers of friars, monks, and
soldiers - of vast red curtains, waving in the doorways of the churches
- of always going up hill, and yet seeing every other street and passage
going higher up - of fruit-stalls, with fresh lemons and oranges hanging
in garlands made of vine-leaves - of a guard-house, and a drawbridge
- and some gateways - and vendors of iced water, sitting with little
trays upon the margin of the kennel - and this is all the consciousness
I had, until I was set down in a rank, dull, weedy court-yard, attached
to a kind of pink jail; and was told I lived there.
I little thought, that day, that I should ever come to have an attachment
for the very stones in the streets of Genoa, and to look back upon the
city with affection as connected with many hours of happiness and quiet!
But these are my first impressions honestly set down; and how they changed,
I will set down too. At present, let us breathe after this long-winded
journey.
CHAPTER IV - GENOA AND ITS NEIGHBOURHOOD
The first impressions of such a place as ALBARO, the suburb of Genoa,
where I am now, as my American friends would say, ‘located,’
can hardly fail, I should imagine, to be mournful and disappointing.
It requires a little time and use to overcome the feeling of depression
consequent, at first, on so much ruin and neglect. Novelty, pleasant
to most people, is particularly delightful, I think, to me. I
am not easily dispirited when I have the means of pursuing my own fancies
and occupations; and I believe I have some natural aptitude for accommodating
myself to circumstances. But, as yet, I stroll about here, in
all the holes and corners of the neighbourhood, in a perpetual state
of forlorn surprise; and returning to my villa: the Villa Bagnerello
(it sounds romantic, but Signor Bagnerello is a butcher hard by): have
sufficient occupation in pondering over my new experiences, and comparing
them, very much to my own amusement, with my expectations, until I wander
out again.
The Villa Bagnerello: or the Pink Jail, a far more expressive name for
the mansion: is in one of the most splendid situations imaginable.
The noble bay of Genoa, with the deep blue Mediterranean, lies stretched
out near at hand; monstrous old desolate houses and palaces are dotted
all about; lofty hills, with their tops often hidden in the clouds,
and with strong forts perched high up on their craggy sides, are close
upon the left; and in front, stretching from the walls of the house,
down to a ruined chapel which stands upon the bold and picturesque rocks
on the sea-shore, are green vineyards, where you may wander all day
long in partial shade, through interminable vistas of grapes, trained
on a rough trellis-work across the narrow paths.
This sequestered spot is approached by lanes so very narrow, that when
we arrived at the Custom-house, we found the people here had taken
the measure of the narrowest among them, and were waiting to apply
it to the carriage; which ceremony was gravely performed in the street,
while we all stood by in breathless suspense. It was found to
be a very tight fit, but just a possibility, and no more - as I am reminded
every day, by the sight of various large holes which it punched in the
walls on either side as it came along. We are more fortunate,
I am told, than an old lady, who took a house in these parts not long
ago, and who stuck fast in her carriage in a lane; and as it
was impossible to open one of the doors, she was obliged to submit to
the indignity of being hauled through one of the little front windows,
like a harlequin.
When you have got through these narrow lanes, you come to an archway,
imperfectly stopped up by a rusty old gate - my gate. The rusty
old gate has a bell to correspond, which you ring as long as you like,
and which nobody answers, as it has no connection whatever with the
house. But there is a rusty old knocker, too - very loose, so
that it slides round when you touch it - and if you learn the trick
of it, and knock long enough, somebody comes. The brave Courier
comes, and gives you admittance. You walk into a seedy little
garden, all wild and weedy, from which the vineyard opens; cross it,
enter a square hall like a cellar, walk up a cracked marble staircase,
and pass into a most enormous room with a vaulted roof and whitewashed
walls: not unlike a great Methodist chapel. This is the sala.
It has five windows and five doors, and is decorated with pictures which
would gladden the heart of one of those picture-cleaners in London who
hang up, as a sign, a picture divided, like death and the lady, at the
top of the old ballad: which always leaves you in a state of uncertainty
whether the ingenious professor has cleaned one half, or dirtied the
other. The furniture of this sala is a sort of red brocade.
All the chairs are immovable, and the sofa weighs several tons.
On the same floor, and opening out of this same chamber, are dining-room,
drawing-room, and divers bedrooms: each with a multiplicity of doors
and windows. Up-stairs are divers other gaunt chambers, and a
kitchen; and down-stairs is another kitchen, which, with all sorts of
strange contrivances for burning charcoal, looks like an alchemical
laboratory. There are also some half-dozen small sitting-rooms,
where the servants in this hot July, may escape from the heat of the
fire, and where the brave Courier plays all sorts of musical instruments
of his own manufacture, all the evening long. A mighty old, wandering,
ghostly, echoing, grim, bare house it is, as ever I beheld or thought
of.
There is a little vine-covered terrace, opening from the drawing-room;
and under this terrace, and forming one side of the little garden, is
what used to be the stable. It is now a cow-house, and has three
cows in it, so that we get new milk by the bucketful. There is
no pasturage near, and they never go out, but are constantly lying down,
and surfeiting themselves with vine-leaves - perfect Italian cows enjoying
the dolce far’ niente all day long. They are presided
over, and slept with, by an old man named Antonio, and his son; two
burnt-sienna natives with naked legs and feet, who wear, each, a shirt,
a pair of trousers, and a red sash, with a relic, or some sacred charm
like the bonbon off a twelfth-cake, hanging round the neck. The
old man is very anxious to convert me to the Catholic faith, and exhorts
me frequently. We sit upon a stone by the door, sometimes in the
evening, like Robinson Crusoe and Friday reversed; and he generally
relates, towards my conversion, an abridgment of the History of Saint
Peter - chiefly, I believe, from the unspeakable delight he has in his
imitation of the cock.
The view, as I have said, is charming; but in the day you must keep
the lattice-blinds close shut, or the sun would drive you mad; and when
the sun goes down you must shut up all the windows, or the mosquitoes
would tempt you to commit suicide. So at this time of the year,
you don’t see much of the prospect within doors. As for
the flies, you don’t mind them. Nor the fleas, whose size
is prodigious, and whose name is Legion, and who populate the coach-house
to that extent that I daily expect to see the carriage going off bodily,
drawn by myriads of industrious fleas in harness. The rats are
kept away, quite comfortably, by scores of lean cats, who roam about
the garden for that purpose. The lizards, of course, nobody cares
for; they play in the sun, and don’t bite. The little scorpions
are merely curious. The beetles are rather late, and have not
appeared yet. The frogs are company. There is a preserve
of them in the grounds of the next villa; and after nightfall, one would
think that scores upon scores of women in pattens were going up and
down a wet stone pavement without a moment’s cessation.
That is exactly the noise they make.
The ruined chapel, on the picturesque and beautiful sea-shore, was dedicated,
once upon a time, to Saint John the Baptist. I believe there is
a legend that Saint John’s bones were received there, with various
solemnities, when they were first brought to Genoa; for Genoa possesses
them to this day. When there is any uncommon tempest at sea, they
are brought out and exhibited to the raging weather, which they never
fail to calm. In consequence of this connection of Saint John
with the city, great numbers of the common people are christened Giovanni
Baptista, which latter name is pronounced in the Genoese patois ‘Batcheetcha,’
like a sneeze. To hear everybody calling everybody else Batcheetcha,
on a Sunday, or festa-day, when there are crowds in the streets, is
not a little singular and amusing to a stranger.
The narrow lanes have great villas opening into them, whose walls (outside
walls, I mean) are profusely painted with all sorts of subjects, grim
and holy. But time and the sea-air have nearly obliterated them;
and they look like the entrance to Vauxhall Gardens on a sunny day.
The court-yards of these houses are overgrown with grass and weeds;
all sorts of hideous patches cover the bases of the statues, as if they
were afflicted with a cutaneous disorder; the outer gates are rusty;
and the iron bars outside the lower windows are all tumbling down.
Firewood is kept in halls where costly treasures might be heaped up,
mountains high; waterfalls are dry and choked; fountains, too dull to
play, and too lazy to work, have just enough recollection of their identity,
in their sleep, to make the neighbourhood damp; and the sirocco wind
is often blowing over all these things for days together, like a gigantic
oven out for a holiday.
Not long ago, there was a festa-day, in honour of the Virgin’s
mother, when the young men of the neighbourhood, having worn green
wreaths of the vine in some procession or other, bathed in them, by
scores. It looked very odd and pretty. Though I am bound
to confess (not knowing of the festa at that time), that I thought,
and was quite satisfied, they wore them as horses do - to keep the flies
off.
Soon afterwards, there was another festa-day, in honour of St. Nazaro.
One of the Albaro young men brought two large bouquets soon after breakfast,
and coming up-stairs into the great sala, presented them himself.
This was a polite way of begging for a contribution towards the expenses
of some music in the Saint’s honour, so we gave him whatever it
may have been, and his messenger departed: well satisfied. At
six o’clock in the evening we went to the church - close at hand
- a very gaudy place, hung all over with festoons and bright draperies,
and filled, from the altar to the main door, with women, all seated.
They wear no bonnets here, simply a long white veil - the ‘mezzero;’
and it was the most gauzy, ethereal-looking audience I ever saw.
The young women are not generally pretty, but they walk remarkably well,
and in their personal carriage and the management of their veils, display
much innate grace and elegance. There were some men present: not
very many: and a few of these were kneeling about the aisles, while
everybody else tumbled over them. Innumerable tapers were burning
in the church; the bits of silver and tin about the saints (especially
in the Virgin’s necklace) sparkled brilliantly; the priests were
seated about the chief altar; the organ played away, lustily, and a
full band did the like; while a conductor, in a little gallery opposite
to the band, hammered away on the desk before him, with a scroll; and
a tenor, without any voice, sang. The band played one way, the
organ played another, the singer went a third, and the unfortunate conductor
banged and banged, and flourished his scroll on some principle of his
own: apparently well satisfied with the whole performance. I never
did hear such a discordant din. The heat was intense all the time.
The men, in red caps, and with loose coats hanging on their shoulders
(they never put them on), were playing bowls, and buying sweetmeats,
immediately outside the church. When half-a-dozen of them finished
a game, they came into the aisle, crossed themselves with the holy water,
knelt on one knee for an instant, and walked off again to play another
game at bowls. They are remarkably expert at this diversion, and
will play in the stony lanes and streets, and on the most uneven and
disastrous ground for such a purpose, with as much nicety as on a billiard-table.
But the most favourite game is the national one of Mora, which they
pursue with surprising ardour, and at which they will stake everything
they possess. It is a destructive kind of gambling, requiring
no accessories but the ten fingers, which are always - I intend no pun
- at hand. Two men play together. One calls a number - say
the extreme one, ten. He marks what portion of it he pleases by
throwing out three, or four, or five fingers; and his adversary has,
in the same instant, at hazard, and without seeing his hand, to throw
out as many fingers, as will make the exact balance. Their eyes
and hands become so used to this, and act with such astonishing rapidity,
that an uninitiated bystander would find it very difficult, if not impossible,
to follow the progress of the game. The initiated, however, of
whom there is always an eager group looking on, devour it with the most
intense avidity; and as they are always ready to champion one side or
the other in case of a dispute, and are frequently divided in their
partisanship, it is often a very noisy proceeding. It is never
the quietest game in the world; for the numbers are always called in
a loud sharp voice, and follow as close upon each other as they can
be counted. On a holiday evening, standing at a window, or walking
in a garden, or passing through the streets, or sauntering in any quiet
place about the town, you will hear this game in progress in a score
of wine-shops at once; and looking over any vineyard walk, or turning
almost any corner, will come upon a knot of players in full cry.
It is observable that most men have a propensity to throw out some particular
number oftener than another; and the vigilance with which two sharp-eyed
players will mutually endeavour to detect this weakness, and adapt their
game to it, is very curious and entertaining. The effect is greatly
heightened by the universal suddenness and vehemence of gesture; two
men playing for half a farthing with an intensity as all-absorbing as
if the stake were life.
Hard by here is a large Palazzo, formerly belonging to some member of
the Brignole family, but just now hired by a school of Jesuits for their
summer quarters. I walked into its dismantled precincts the other
evening about sunset, and couldn’t help pacing up and down for
a little time, drowsily taking in the aspect of the place: which is
repeated hereabouts in all directions.
I loitered to and fro, under a colonnade, forming two sides of a weedy,
grass-grown court-yard, whereof the house formed a third side, and a
low terrace-walk, overlooking the garden and the neighbouring hills,
the fourth. I don’t believe there was an uncracked stone
in the whole pavement. In the centre was a melancholy statue,
so piebald in its decay, that it looked exactly as if it had been covered
with sticking-plaster, and afterwards powdered. The stables, coach-houses,
offices, were all empty, all ruinous, all utterly deserted.
Doors had lost their hinges, and were holding on by their latches; windows
were broken, painted plaster had peeled off, and was lying about in
clods; fowls and cats had so taken possession of the out-buildings,
that I couldn’t help thinking of the fairy tales, and eyeing them
with suspicion, as transformed retainers, waiting to be changed back
again. One old Tom in particular: a scraggy brute, with a hungry
green eye (a poor relation, in reality, I am inclined to think): came
prowling round and round me, as if he half believed, for the moment,
that I might be the hero come to marry the lady, and set all to-rights;
but discovering his mistake, he suddenly gave a grim snarl, and walked
away with such a tremendous tail, that he couldn’t get into the
little hole where he lived, but was obliged to wait outside, until his
indignation and his tail had gone down together.
In a sort of summer-house, or whatever it may be, in this colonnade,
some Englishmen had been living, like grubs in a nut; but the Jesuits
had given them notice to go, and they had gone, and that was
shut up too. The house: a wandering, echoing, thundering barrack
of a place, with the lower windows barred up, as usual, was wide open
at the door: and I have no doubt I might have gone in, and gone to bed,
and gone dead, and nobody a bit the wiser. Only one suite of rooms
on an upper floor was tenanted; and from one of these, the voice of
a young-lady vocalist, practising bravura lustily, came flaunting out
upon the silent evening.
I went down into the garden, intended to be prim and quaint, with avenues,
and terraces, and orange-trees, and statues, and water in stone basins;
and everything was green, gaunt, weedy, straggling, under grown or over
grown, mildewy, damp, redolent of all sorts of slabby, clammy, creeping,
and uncomfortable life. There was nothing bright in the whole
scene but a firefly - one solitary firefly - showing against the dark
bushes like the last little speck of the departed Glory of the house;
and even it went flitting up and down at sudden angles, and leaving
a place with a jerk, and describing an irregular circle, and returning
to the same place with a twitch that startled one: as if it were looking
for the rest of the Glory, and wondering (Heaven knows it might!) what
had become of it.
In the course of two months, the flitting shapes and shadows of my dismal
entering reverie gradually resolved themselves into familiar forms and
substances; and I already began to think that when the time should come,
a year hence, for closing the long holiday and turning back to England,
I might part from Genoa with anything but a glad heart.
It is a place that ‘grows upon you’ every day. There
seems to be always something to find out in it. There are the
most extraordinary alleys and by-ways to walk about in. You can
lose your way (what a comfort that is, when you are idle!) twenty times
a day, if you like; and turn up again, under the most unexpected and
surprising difficulties. It abounds in the strangest contrasts;
things that are picturesque, ugly, mean, magnificent, delightful, and
offensive, break upon the view at every turn.
They who would know how beautiful the country immediately surrounding
Genoa is, should climb (in clear weather) to the top of Monte Faccio,
or, at least, ride round the city walls: a feat more easily performed.
No prospect can be more diversified and lovely than the changing views
of the harbour, and the valleys of the two rivers, the Polcevera and
the Bizagno, from the heights along which the strongly fortified walls
are carried, like the great wall of China in little. In not the
least picturesque part of this ride, there is a fair specimen of a real
Genoese tavern, where the visitor may derive good entertainment from
real Genoese dishes, such as Tagliarini; Ravioli; German sausages, strong
of garlic, sliced and eaten with fresh green figs; cocks’ combs
and sheep-kidneys, chopped up with mutton chops and liver; small pieces
of some unknown part of a calf, twisted into small shreds, fried, and
served up in a great dish like white-bait; and other curiosities of
that kind. They often get wine at these suburban Trattorie, from
France and Spain and Portugal, which is brought over by small captains
in little trading-vessels. They buy it at so much a bottle, without
asking what it is, or caring to remember if anybody tells them, and
usually divide it into two heaps; of which they label one Champagne,
and the other Madeira. The various opposite flavours, qualities,
countries, ages, and vintages that are comprised under these two general
heads is quite extraordinary. The most limited range is probably
from cool Gruel up to old Marsala, and down again to apple Tea.
The great majority of the streets are as narrow as any thoroughfare
can well be, where people (even Italian people) are supposed to live
and walk about; being mere lanes, with here and there a kind of well,
or breathing-place. The houses are immensely high, painted in
all sorts of colours, and are in every stage and state of damage, dirt,
and lack of repair. They are commonly let off in floors, or flats,
like the houses in the old town of Edinburgh, or many houses in Paris.
There are few street doors; the entrance halls are, for the most part,
looked upon as public property; and any moderately enterprising scavenger
might make a fine fortune by now and then clearing them out. As
it is impossible for coaches to penetrate into these streets, there
are sedan chairs, gilded and otherwise, for hire in divers places.
A great many private chairs are also kept among the nobility and gentry;
and at night these are trotted to and fro in all directions, preceded
by bearers of great lanthorns, made of linen stretched upon a frame.
The sedans and lanthorns are the legitimate successors of the long strings
of patient and much-abused mules, that go jingling their little bells
through these confined streets all day long. They follow them,
as regularly as the stars the sun.
When shall I forget the Streets of Palaces: the Strada Nuova and the
Strada Balbi! or how the former looked one summer day, when I first
saw it underneath the brightest and most intensely blue of summer skies:
which its narrow perspective of immense mansions, reduced to a tapering
and most precious strip of brightness, looking down upon the heavy shade
below! A brightness not too common, even in July and August, to
be well esteemed: for, if the Truth must out, there were not eight blue
skies in as many midsummer weeks, saving, sometimes, early in the morning;
when, looking out to sea, the water and the firmament were one world
of deep and brilliant blue. At other times, there were clouds
and haze enough to make an Englishman grumble in his own climate.
The endless details of these rich Palaces: the walls of some of them,
within, alive with masterpieces by Vandyke! The great, heavy,
stone balconies, one above another, and tier over tier: with here and
there, one larger than the rest, towering high up - a huge marble platform;
the doorless vestibules, massively barred lower windows, immense public
staircases, thick marble pillars, strong dungeon-like arches, and dreary,
dreaming, echoing vaulted chambers: among which the eye wanders again,
and again, and again, as every palace is succeeded by another - the
terrace gardens between house and house, with green arches of the vine,
and groves of orange-trees, and blushing oleander in full bloom, twenty,
thirty, forty feet above the street - the painted halls, mouldering,
and blotting, and rotting in the damp corners, and still shining out
in beautiful colours and voluptuous designs, where the walls are dry
- the faded figures on the outsides of the houses, holding wreaths,
and crowns, and flying upward, and downward, and standing in niches,
and here and there looking fainter and more feeble than elsewhere, by
contrast with some fresh little Cupids, who on a more recently decorated
portion of the front, are stretching out what seems to be the semblance
of a blanket, but is, indeed, a sun-dial - the steep, steep, up-hill
streets of small palaces (but very large palaces for all that), with
marble terraces looking down into close by-ways - the magnificent and
innumerable Churches; and the rapid passage from a street of stately
edifices, into a maze of the vilest squalor, steaming with unwholesome
stenches, and swarming with half-naked children and whole worlds of
dirty people - make up, altogether, such a scene of wonder: so lively,
and yet so dead: so noisy, and yet so quiet: so obtrusive, and yet so
shy and lowering: so wide awake, and yet so fast asleep: that it is
a sort of intoxication to a stranger to walk on, and on, and on, and
look about him. A bewildering phantasmagoria, with all the inconsistency
of a dream, and all the pain and all the pleasure of an extravagant
reality!
The different uses to which some of these Palaces are applied, all at
once, is characteristic. For instance, the English Banker (my
excellent and hospitable friend) has his office in a good-sized Palazzo
in the Strada Nuova. In the hall (every inch of which is elaborately
painted, but which is as dirty as a police-station in London), a hook-nosed
Saracen’s Head with an immense quantity of black hair (there is
a man attached to it) sells walking-sticks. On the other side
of the doorway, a lady with a showy handkerchief for head-dress (wife
to the Saracen’s Head, I believe) sells articles of her own knitting;
and sometimes flowers. A little further in, two or three blind
men occasionally beg. Sometimes, they are visited by a man without
legs, on a little go-cart, but who has such a fresh-coloured, lively
face, and such a respectable, well-conditioned body, that he looks as
if he had sunk into the ground up to his middle, or had come, but partially,
up a flight of cellar-steps to speak to somebody. A little further
in, a few men, perhaps, lie asleep in the middle of the day; or they
may be chairmen waiting for their absent freight. If so, they
have brought their chairs in with them, and there they stand
also. On the left of the hall is a little room: a hatter’s
shop. On the first floor, is the English bank. On the first
floor also, is a whole house, and a good large residence too.
Heaven knows what there may be above that; but when you are there, you
have only just begun to go up-stairs. And yet, coming down-stairs
again, thinking of this; and passing out at a great crazy door in the
back of the hall, instead of turning the other way, to get into the
street again; it bangs behind you, making the dismallest and most lonesome
echoes, and you stand in a yard (the yard of the same house) which seems
to have been unvisited by human foot, for a hundred years. Not
a sound disturbs its repose. Not a head, thrust out of any of
the grim, dark, jealous windows, within sight, makes the weeds in the
cracked pavement faint of heart, by suggesting the possibility of there
being hands to grub them up. Opposite to you, is a giant figure
carved in stone, reclining, with an urn, upon a lofty piece of artificial
rockwork; and out of the urn, dangles the fag end of a leaden pipe,
which, once upon a time, poured a small torrent down the rocks.
But the eye-sockets of the giant are not drier than this channel is
now. He seems to have given his urn, which is nearly upside down,
a final tilt; and after crying, like a sepulchral child, ‘All
gone!’ to have lapsed into a stony silence.
In the streets of shops, the houses are much smaller, but of great size
notwithstanding, and extremely high. They are very dirty: quite
undrained, if my nose be at all reliable: and emit a peculiar fragrance,
like the smell of very bad cheese, kept in very hot blankets.
Notwithstanding the height of the houses, there would seem to have been
a lack of room in the City, for new houses are thrust in everywhere.
Wherever it has been possible to cram a tumble-down tenement into a
crack or corner, in it has gone. If there be a nook or angle in
the wall of a church, or a crevice in any other dead wall, of any sort,
there you are sure to find some kind of habitation: looking as if it
had grown there, like a fungus. Against the Government House,
against the old Senate House, round about any large building, little
shops stick so close, like parasite vermin to the great carcase.
And for all this, look where you may: up steps, down steps, anywhere,
everywhere: there are irregular houses, receding, starting forward,
tumbling down, leaning against their neighbours, crippling themselves
or their friends by some means or other, until one, more irregular than
the rest, chokes up the way, and you can’t see any further.
One of the rottenest-looking parts of the town, I think, is down by
the landing-wharf: though it may be, that its being associated with
a great deal of rottenness on the evening of our arrival, has stamped
it deeper in my mind. Here, again, the houses are very high, and
are of an infinite variety of deformed shapes, and have (as most of
the houses have) something hanging out of a great many windows, and
wafting its frowsy fragrance on the breeze. Sometimes, it is a
curtain; sometimes, it is a carpet; sometimes, it is a bed; sometimes,
a whole line-full of clothes; but there is almost always something.
Before the basement of these houses, is an arcade over the pavement:
very massive, dark, and low, like an old crypt. The stone, or
plaster, of which it is made, has turned quite black; and against every
one of these black piles, all sorts of filth and garbage seem to accumulate
spontaneously. Beneath some of the arches, the sellers of macaroni
and polenta establish their stalls, which are by no means inviting.
The offal of a fish-market, near at hand - that is to say, of a back
lane, where people sit upon the ground and on various old bulk-heads
and sheds, and sell fish when they have any to dispose of - and of a
vegetable market, constructed on the same principle - are contributed
to the decoration of this quarter; and as all the mercantile business
is transacted here, and it is crowded all day, it has a very decided
flavour about it. The Porto Franco, or Free Port (where goods
brought in from foreign countries pay no duty until they are sold and
taken out, as in a bonded warehouse in England), is down here also;
and two portentous officials, in cocked hats, stand at the gate to search
you if they choose, and to keep out Monks and Ladies. For, Sanctity
as well as Beauty has been known to yield to the temptation of smuggling,
and in the same way: that is to say, by concealing the smuggled property
beneath the loose folds of its dress. So Sanctity and Beauty may,
by no means, enter.
The streets of Genoa would be all the better for the importation of
a few Priests of prepossessing appearance. Every fourth or fifth
man in the streets is a Priest or a Monk; and there is pretty sure to
be at least one itinerant ecclesiastic inside or outside every hackney
carriage on the neighbouring roads. I have no knowledge, elsewhere,
of more repulsive countenances than are to be found among these gentry.
If Nature’s handwriting be at all legible, greater varieties of
sloth, deceit, and intellectual torpor, could hardly be observed among
any class of men in the world.
MR. PEPYS once heard a clergyman assert in his sermon, in illustration
of his respect for the Priestly office, that if he could meet a Priest
and angel together, he would salute the Priest first. I am rather
of the opinion of PETRARCH, who, when his pupil BOCCACCIO wrote to him
in great tribulation, that he had been visited and admonished for his
writings by a Carthusian Friar who claimed to be a messenger immediately
commissioned by Heaven for that purpose, replied, that for his own part,
he would take the liberty of testing the reality of the commission by
personal observation of the Messenger’s face, eyes, forehead,
behaviour, and discourse. I cannot but believe myself, from similar
observation, that many unaccredited celestial messengers may be seen
skulking through the streets of Genoa, or droning away their lives in
other Italian towns.
Perhaps the Cappuccíni, though not a learned body, are, as an
order, the best friends of the people. They seem to mingle with
them more immediately, as their counsellors and comforters; and to go
among them more, when they are sick; and to pry less than some other
orders, into the secrets of families, for the purpose of establishing
a baleful ascendency over their weaker members; and to be influenced
by a less fierce desire to make converts, and once made, to let them
go to ruin, soul and body. They may be seen, in their coarse dress,
in all parts of the town at all times, and begging in the markets early
in the morning. The Jesuits too, muster strong in the streets,
and go slinking noiselessly about, in pairs, like black cats.
In some of the narrow passages, distinct trades congregate. There
is a street of jewellers, and there is a row of booksellers; but even
down in places where nobody ever can, or ever could, penetrate in a
carriage, there are mighty old palaces shut in among the gloomiest and
closest walls, and almost shut out from the sun. Very few of the
tradesmen have any idea of setting forth their goods, or disposing them
for show. If you, a stranger, want to buy anything, you usually
look round the shop till you see it; then clutch it, if it be within
reach, and inquire how much. Everything is sold at the most unlikely
place. If you want coffee, you go to a sweetmeat shop; and if
you want meat, you will probably find it behind an old checked curtain,
down half-a-dozen steps, in some sequestered nook as hard to find as
if the commodity were poison, and Genoa’s law were death to any
that uttered it.
Most of the apothecaries’ shops are great lounging-places.
Here, grave men with sticks, sit down in the shade for hours together,
passing a meagre Genoa paper from hand to hand, and talking, drowsily
and sparingly, about the News. Two or three of these are poor
physicians, ready to proclaim themselves on an emergency, and tear off
with any messenger who may arrive. You may know them by the way
in which they stretch their necks to listen, when you enter; and by
the sigh with which they fall back again into their dull corners, on
finding that you only want medicine. Few people lounge in the
barbers’ shops; though they are very numerous, as hardly any man
shaves himself. But the apothecary’s has its group of loungers,
who sit back among the bottles, with their hands folded over the tops
of their sticks. So still and quiet, that either you don’t
see them in the darkened shop, or mistake them - as I did one ghostly
man in bottle-green, one day, with a hat like a stopper - for Horse
Medicine.
On a summer evening the Genoese are as fond of putting themselves, as
their ancestors were of putting houses, in every available inch of space
in and about the town. In all the lanes and alleys, and up every
little ascent, and on every dwarf wall, and on every flight of steps,
they cluster like bees. Meanwhile (and especially on festa-days)
the bells of the churches ring incessantly; not in peals, or any known
form of sound, but in a horrible, irregular, jerking, dingle, dingle,
dingle: with a sudden stop at every fifteenth dingle or so, which is
maddening. This performance is usually achieved by a boy up in
the steeple, who takes hold of the clapper, or a little rope attached
to it, and tries to dingle louder than every other boy similarly employed.
The noise is supposed to be particularly obnoxious to Evil Spirits;
but looking up into the steeples, and seeing (and hearing) these young
Christians thus engaged, one might very naturally mistake them for the
Enemy.
Festa-days, early in the autumn, are very numerous. All the shops
were shut up, twice within a week, for these holidays; and one night,
all the houses in the neighbourhood of a particular church were illuminated,
while the church itself was lighted, outside, with torches; and a grove
of blazing links was erected, in an open space outside one of the city
gates. This part of the ceremony is prettier and more singular
a little way in the country, where you can trace the illuminated cottages
all the way up a steep hill-side; and where you pass festoons of tapers,
wasting away in the starlight night, before some lonely little house
upon the road.
On these days, they always dress the church of the saint in whose honour
the festa is holden, very gaily. Gold-embroidered festoons of
different colours, hang from the arches; the altar furniture is set
forth; and sometimes, even the lofty pillars are swathed from top to
bottom in tight-fitting draperies. The cathedral is dedicated
to St. Lorenzo. On St. Lorenzo’s day, we went into it, just
as the sun was setting. Although these decorations are usually
in very indifferent taste, the effect, just then, was very superb indeed.
For the whole building was dressed in red; and the sinking sun, streaming
in, through a great red curtain in the chief doorway, made all the gorgeousness
its own. When the sun went down, and it gradually grew quite dark
inside, except for a few twinkling tapers on the principal altar, and
some small dangling silver lamps, it was very mysterious and effective.
But, sitting in any of the churches towards evening, is like a mild
dose of opium.
With the money collected at a festa, they usually pay for the dressing
of the church, and for the hiring of the band, and for the tapers.
If there be any left (which seldom happens, I believe), the souls in
Purgatory get the benefit of it. They are also supposed to have
the benefit of the exertions of certain small boys, who shake money-boxes
before some mysterious little buildings like rural turnpikes, which
(usually shut up close) fly open on Red-letter days, and disclose an
image and some flowers inside.
Just without the city gate, on the Albara road, is a small house, with
an altar in it, and a stationary money-box: also for the benefit of
the souls in Purgatory. Still further to stimulate the charitable,
there is a monstrous painting on the plaster, on either side of the
grated door, representing a select party of souls, frying. One
of them has a grey moustache, and an elaborate head of grey hair: as
if he had been taken out of a hairdresser’s window and cast into
the furnace. There he is: a most grotesque and hideously comic
old soul: for ever blistering in the real sun, and melting in the mimic
fire, for the gratification and improvement (and the contributions)
of the poor Genoese.
They are not a very joyous people, and are seldom seen to dance on their
holidays: the staple places of entertainment among the women, being
the churches and the public walks. They are very good-tempered,
obliging, and industrious. Industry has not made them clean, for
their habitations are extremely filthy, and their usual occupation on
a fine Sunday morning, is to sit at their doors, hunting in each other’s
heads. But their dwellings are so close and confined that if those
parts of the city had been beaten down by Massena in the time of the
terrible Blockade, it would have at least occasioned one public benefit
among many misfortunes.
The Peasant Women, with naked feet and legs, are so constantly washing
clothes, in the public tanks, and in every stream and ditch, that one
cannot help wondering, in the midst of all this dirt, who wears them
when they are clean. The custom is to lay the wet linen which
is being operated upon, on a smooth stone, and hammer away at it, with
a flat wooden mallet. This they do, as furiously as if they were
revenging themselves on dress in general for being connected with the
Fall of Mankind.
It is not unusual to see, lying on the edge of the tank at these times,
or on another flat stone, an unfortunate baby, tightly swathed up, arms
and legs and all, in an enormous quantity of wrapper, so that it is
unable to move a toe or finger. This custom (which we often see
represented in old pictures) is universal among the common people.
A child is left anywhere without the possibility of crawling away, or
is accidentally knocked off a shelf, or tumbled out of bed, or is hung
up to a hook now and then, and left dangling like a doll at an English
rag-shop, without the least inconvenience to anybody.
I was sitting, one Sunday, soon after my arrival, in the little country
church of San Martino, a couple of miles from the city, while a baptism
took place. I saw the priest, and an attendant with a large taper,
and a man, and a woman, and some others; but I had no more idea, until
the ceremony was all over, that it was a baptism, or that the curious
little stiff instrument, that was passed from one to another, in the
course of the ceremony, by the handle - like a short poker - was a child,
than I had that it was my own christening. I borrowed the child
afterwards, for a minute or two (it was lying across the font then),
and found it very red in the face but perfectly quiet, and not to be
bent on any terms. The number of cripples in the streets, soon
ceased to surprise me.
There are plenty of Saints’ and Virgin’s Shrines, of course;
generally at the corners of streets. The favourite memento to
the Faithful, about Genoa, is a painting, representing a peasant on
his knees, with a spade and some other agricultural implements beside
him; and the Madonna, with the Infant Saviour in her arms, appearing
to him in a cloud. This is the legend of the Madonna della Guardia:
a chapel on a mountain within a few miles, which is in high repute.
It seems that this peasant lived all alone by himself, tilling some
land atop of the mountain, where, being a devout man, he daily said
his prayers to the Virgin in the open air; for his hut was a very poor
one. Upon a certain day, the Virgin appeared to him, as in the
picture, and said, ‘Why do you pray in the open air, and without
a priest?’ The peasant explained because there was neither
priest nor church at hand - a very uncommon complaint indeed in Italy.
‘I should wish, then,’ said the Celestial Visitor, ‘to
have a chapel built here, in which the prayers of the Faithful may be
offered up.’ ‘But, Santissima Madonna,’ said
the peasant, ‘I am a poor man; and chapels cannot be built without
money. They must be supported, too, Santissima; for to have a
chapel and not support it liberally, is a wickedness - a deadly sin.’
This sentiment gave great satisfaction to the visitor. ‘Go!’
said she. ‘There is such a village in the valley on the
left, and such another village in the valley on the right, and such
another village elsewhere, that will gladly contribute to the building
of a chapel. Go to them! Relate what you have seen; and
do not doubt that sufficient money will be forthcoming to erect my chapel,
or that it will, afterwards, be handsomely maintained.’
All of which (miraculously) turned out to be quite true. And in
proof of this prediction and revelation, there is the chapel of the
Madonna della Guardia, rich and flourishing at this day.
The splendour and variety of the Genoese churches, can hardly be exaggerated.
The church of the Annunciata especially: built, like many of the others,
at the cost of one noble family, and now in slow progress of repair:
from the outer door to the utmost height of the high cupola, is so elaborately
painted and set in gold, that it looks (as SIMOND describes it, in his
charming book on Italy) like a great enamelled snuff-box. Most
of the richer churches contain some beautiful pictures, or other embellishments
of great price, almost universally set, side by side, with sprawling
effigies of maudlin monks, and the veriest trash and tinsel ever seen.
It may be a consequence of the frequent direction of the popular mind,
and pocket, to the souls in Purgatory, but there is very little tenderness
for the bodies of the dead here. For the very poor, there
are, immediately outside one angle of the walls, and behind a jutting
point of the fortification, near the sea, certain common pits - one
for every day in the year - which all remain closed up, until the turn
of each comes for its daily reception of dead bodies. Among the
troops in the town, there are usually some Swiss: more or less.
When any of these die, they are buried out of a fund maintained by such
of their countrymen as are resident in Genoa. Their providing
coffins for these men is matter of great astonishment to the authorities.
Certainly, the effect of this promiscuous and indecent splashing down
of dead people in so many wells, is bad. It surrounds Death with
revolting associations, that insensibly become connected with those
whom Death is approaching. Indifference and avoidance are the
natural result; and all the softening influences of the great sorrow
are harshly disturbed.
There is a ceremony when an old Cavaliére or the like, expires,
of erecting a pile of benches in the cathedral, to represent his bier;
covering them over with a pall of black velvet; putting his hat and
sword on the top; making a little square of seats about the whole; and
sending out formal invitations to his friends and acquaintances to come
and sit there, and hear Mass: which is performed at the principal Altar,
decorated with an infinity of candles for that purpose.
When the better kind of people die, or are at the point of death, their
nearest relations generally walk off: retiring into the country for
a little change, and leaving the body to be disposed of, without any
superintendence from them. The procession is usually formed, and
the coffin borne, and the funeral conducted, by a body of persons called
a Confratérnita, who, as a kind of voluntary penance, undertake
to perform these offices, in regular rotation, for the dead; but who,
mingling something of pride with their humility, are dressed in a loose
garment covering their whole person, and wear a hood concealing the
face; with breathing-holes and apertures for the eyes. The effect
of this costume is very ghastly: especially in the case of a certain
Blue Confratérnita belonging to Genoa, who, to say the least
of them, are very ugly customers, and who look - suddenly encountered
in their pious ministration in the streets - as if they were Ghoules
or Demons, bearing off the body for themselves.
Although such a custom may be liable to the abuse attendant on many
Italian customs, of being recognised as a means of establishing a current
account with Heaven, on which to draw, too easily, for future bad actions,
or as an expiation for past misdeeds, it must be admitted to be a good
one, and a practical one, and one involving unquestionably good works.
A voluntary service like this, is surely better than the imposed penance
(not at all an infrequent one) of giving so many licks to such and such
a stone in the pavement of the cathedral; or than a vow to the Madonna
to wear nothing but blue for a year or two. This is supposed to
give great delight above; blue being (as is well known) the Madonna’s
favourite colour. Women who have devoted themselves to this act
of Faith, are very commonly seen walking in the streets.
There are three theatres in the city, besides an old one now rarely
opened. The most important - the Carlo Felice: the opera-house
of Genoa - is a very splendid, commodious, and beautiful theatre.
A company of comedians were acting there, when we arrived: and soon
after their departure, a second-rate opera company came. The great
season is not until the carnival time - in the spring. Nothing
impressed me, so much, in my visits here (which were pretty numerous)
as the uncommonly hard and cruel character of the audience, who resent
the slightest defect, take nothing good-humouredly, seem to be always
lying in wait for an opportunity to hiss, and spare the actresses as
little as the actors.
But, as there is nothing else of a public nature at which they are allowed
to express the least disapprobation, perhaps they are resolved to make
the most of this opportunity.
There are a great number of Piedmontese officers too, who are allowed
the privilege of kicking their heels in the pit, for next to nothing:
gratuitous, or cheap accommodation for these gentlemen being insisted
on, by the Governor, in all public or semi-public entertainments.
They are lofty critics in consequence, and infinitely more exacting
than if they made the unhappy manager’s fortune.
The TEATRO DIURNO, or Day Theatre, is a covered stage in the open air,
where the performances take place by daylight, in the cool of the afternoon;
commencing at four or five o’clock, and lasting, some three hours.
It is curious, sitting among the audience, to have a fine view of the
neighbouring hills and houses, and to see the neighbours at their windows
looking on, and to hear the bells of the churches and convents ringing
at most complete cross-purposes with the scene. Beyond this, and
the novelty of seeing a play in the fresh pleasant air, with the darkening
evening closing in, there is nothing very exciting or characteristic
in the performances. The actors are indifferent; and though they
sometimes represent one of Goldoni’s comedies, the staple of the
Drama is French. Anything like nationality is dangerous to despotic
governments, and Jesuit-beleaguered kings.
The Theatre of Puppets, or Marionetti - a famous company from Milan
- is, without any exception, the drollest exhibition I ever beheld in
my life. I never saw anything so exquisitely ridiculous.
They look between four and five feet high, but are really much
smaller; for when a musician in the orchestra happens to put his hat
on the stage, it becomes alarmingly gigantic, and almost blots out an
actor. They usually play a comedy, and a ballet. The comic
man in the comedy I saw one summer night, is a waiter in an hotel.
There never was such a locomotive actor, since the world began.
Great pains are taken with him. He has extra joints in his legs:
and a practical eye, with which he winks at the pit, in a manner that
is absolutely insupportable to a stranger, but which the initiated audience,
mainly composed of the common people, receive (so they do everything
else) quite as a matter of course, and as if he were a man. His
spirits are prodigious. He continually shakes his legs, and winks
his eye. And there is a heavy father with grey hair, who sits
down on the regular conventional stage-bank, and blesses his daughter
in the regular conventional way, who is tremendous. No one would
suppose it possible that anything short of a real man could be so tedious.
It is the triumph of art.
In the ballet, an Enchanter runs away with the Bride, in the very hour
of her nuptials, He brings her to his cave, and tries to soothe her.
They sit down on a sofa (the regular sofa! in the regular place, O.
P. Second Entrance!) and a procession of musicians enters; one creature
playing a drum, and knocking himself off his legs at every blow.
These failing to delight her, dancers appear. Four first; then
two; the two; the flesh-coloured two. The way in which
they dance; the height to which they spring; the impossible and inhuman
extent to which they pirouette; the revelation of their preposterous
legs; the coming down with a pause, on the very tips of their toes,
when the music requires it; the gentleman’s retiring up, when
it is the lady’s turn; and the lady’s retiring up, when
it is the gentleman’s turn; the final passion of a pas-de-deux;
and the going off with a bound! - I shall never see a real ballet, with
a composed countenance again.
I went, another night, to see these Puppets act a play called ‘St.
Helena, or the Death of Napoleon.’ It began by the disclosure
of Napoleon, with an immense head, seated on a sofa in his chamber at
St. Helena; to whom his valet entered with this obscure announcement:
‘Sir Yew ud se on Low?’ (the ow, as in cow).
Sir Hudson (that you could have seen his regimentals!) was a perfect
mammoth of a man, to Napoleon; hideously ugly, with a monstrously disproportionate
face, and a great clump for the lower-jaw, to express his tyrannical
and obdurate nature. He began his system of persecution, by calling
his prisoner ‘General Buonaparte;’ to which the latter replied,
with the deepest tragedy, ‘Sir Yew ud se on Low, call me not thus.
Repeat that phrase and leave me! I am Napoleon, Emperor of France!’
Sir Yew ud se on, nothing daunted, proceeded to entertain him with an
ordinance of the British Government, regulating the state he should
preserve, and the furniture of his rooms: and limiting his attendants
to four or five persons. ‘Four or five for me!’
said Napoleon. ‘Me! One hundred thousand men were
lately at my sole command; and this English officer talks of four or
five for me!’ Throughout the piece, Napoleon (who
talked very like the real Napoleon, and was, for ever, having small
soliloquies by himself) was very bitter on ‘these English officers,’
and ‘these English soldiers;’ to the great satisfaction
of the audience, who were perfectly delighted to have Low bullied; and
who, whenever Low said ‘General Buonaparte’ (which he always
did: always receiving the same correction), quite execrated him.
It would be hard to say why; for Italians have little cause to sympathise
with Napoleon, Heaven knows.
There was no plot at all, except that a French officer, disguised as
an Englishman, came to propound a plan of escape; and being discovered,
but not before Napoleon had magnanimously refused to steal his freedom,
was immediately ordered off by Low to be hanged. In two very long
speeches, which Low made memorable, by winding up with ‘Yas!’
- to show that he was English - which brought down thunders of applause.
Napoleon was so affected by this catastrophe, that he fainted away on
the spot, and was carried out by two other puppets. Judging from
what followed, it would appear that he never recovered the shock; for
the next act showed him, in a clean shirt, in his bed (curtains crimson
and white), where a lady, prematurely dressed in mourning, brought two
little children, who kneeled down by the bedside, while he made a decent
end; the last word on his lips being ‘Vatterlo.’
It was unspeakably ludicrous. Buonaparte’s boots were so
wonderfully beyond control, and did such marvellous things of their
own accord: doubling themselves up, and getting under tables, and dangling
in the air, and sometimes skating away with him, out of all human knowledge,
when he was in full speech - mischances which were not rendered the
less absurd, by a settled melancholy depicted in his face. To
put an end to one conference with Low, he had to go to a table, and
read a book: when it was the finest spectacle I ever beheld, to see
his body bending over the volume, like a boot-jack, and his sentimental
eyes glaring obstinately into the pit. He was prodigiously good,
in bed, with an immense collar to his shirt, and his little hands outside
the coverlet. So was Dr. Antommarchi, represented by a puppet
with long lank hair, like Mawworm’s, who, in consequence of some
derangement of his wires, hovered about the couch like a vulture, and
gave medical opinions in the air. He was almost as good as Low,
though the latter was great at all times - a decided brute and villain,
beyond all possibility of mistake. Low was especially fine at
the last, when, hearing the doctor and the valet say, ‘The Emperor
is dead!’ he pulled out his watch, and wound up the piece (not
the watch) by exclaiming, with characteristic brutality, ‘Ha!
ha! Eleven minutes to six! The General dead! and the spy
hanged!’ This brought the curtain down, triumphantly.
There is not in Italy, they say (and I believe them), a lovelier residence
than the Palazzo Peschiere, or Palace of the Fishponds, whither we removed
as soon as our three months’ tenancy of the Pink Jail at Albaro
had ceased and determined.
It stands on a height within the walls of Genoa, but aloof from the
town: surrounded by beautiful gardens of its own, adorned with statues,
vases, fountains, marble basins, terraces, walks of orange-trees and
lemon-trees, groves of roses and camellias. All its apartments
are beautiful in their proportions and decorations; but the great hall,
some fifty feet in height, with three large windows at the end, overlooking
the whole town of Genoa, the harbour, and the neighbouring sea, affords
one of the most fascinating and delightful prospects in the world.
Any house more cheerful and habitable than the great rooms are, within,
it would be difficult to conceive; and certainly nothing more delicious
than the scene without, in sunshine or in moonlight, could be imagined.
It is more like an enchanted place in an Eastern story than a grave
and sober lodging.
How you may wander on, from room to room, and never tire of the wild
fancies on the walls and ceilings, as bright in their fresh colouring
as if they had been painted yesterday; or how one floor, or even the
great hall which opens on eight other rooms, is a spacious promenade;
or how there are corridors and bed-chambers above, which we never use
and rarely visit, and scarcely know the way through; or how there is
a view of a perfectly different character on each of the four sides
of the building; matters little. But that prospect from the hall
is like a vision to me. I go back to it, in fancy, as I have done
in calm reality a hundred times a day; and stand there, looking out,
with the sweet scents from the garden rising up about me, in a perfect
dream of happiness.
There lies all Genoa, in beautiful confusion, with its many churches,
monasteries, and convents, pointing up into the sunny sky; and down
below me, just where the roofs begin, a solitary convent parapet, fashioned
like a gallery, with an iron across at the end, where sometimes early
in the morning, I have seen a little group of dark-veiled nuns gliding
sorrowfully to and fro, and stopping now and then to peep down upon
the waking world in which they have no part. Old Monte Faccio,
brightest of hills in good weather, but sulkiest when storms are coming
on, is here, upon the left. The Fort within the walls (the good
King built it to command the town, and beat the houses of the Genoese
about their ears, in case they should be discontented) commands that
height upon the right. The broad sea lies beyond, in front there;
and that line of coast, beginning by the light-house, and tapering away,
a mere speck in the rosy distance, is the beautiful coast road that
leads to Nice. The garden near at hand, among the roofs and houses:
all red with roses and fresh with little fountains: is the Acqua Sola
- a public promenade, where the military band plays gaily, and the white
veils cluster thick, and the Genoese nobility ride round, and round,
and round, in state-clothes and coaches at least, if not in absolute
wisdom. Within a stone’s-throw, as it seems, the audience
of the Day Theatre sit: their faces turned this way. But as the
stage is hidden, it is very odd, without a knowledge of the cause, to
see their faces changed so suddenly from earnestness to laughter; and
odder still, to hear the rounds upon rounds of applause, rattling in
the evening air, to which the curtain falls. But, being Sunday
night, they act their best and most attractive play. And now,
the sun is going down, in such magnificent array of red, and green,
and golden light, as neither pen nor pencil could depict; and to the
ringing of the vesper bells, darkness sets in at once, without a twilight.
Then, lights begin to shine in Genoa, and on the country road; and the
revolving lanthorn out at sea there, flashing, for an instant, on this
palace front and portico, illuminates it as if there were a bright moon
bursting from behind a cloud; then, merges it in deep obscurity.
And this, so far as I know, is the only reason why the Genoese avoid
it after dark, and think it haunted.
My memory will haunt it, many nights, in time to come; but nothing worse,
I will engage. The same Ghost will occasionally sail away, as
I did one pleasant autumn evening, into the bright prospect, and sniff
the morning air at Marseilles.
The corpulent hairdresser was still sitting in his slippers outside
his shop-door there, but the twirling ladies in the window, with the
natural inconstancy of their sex, had ceased to twirl, and were languishing,
stock still, with their beautiful faces addressed to blind corners of
the establishment, where it was impossible for admirers to penetrate.
The steamer had come from Genoa in a delicious run of eighteen hours,
and we were going to run back again by the Cornice road from Nice: not
being satisfied to have seen only the outsides of the beautiful towns
that rise in picturesque white clusters from among the olive woods,
and rocks, and hills, upon the margin of the Sea.
The Boat which started for Nice that night, at eight o’clock,
was very small, and so crowded with goods that there was scarcely room
to move; neither was there anything to cat on board, except bread; nor
to drink, except coffee. But being due at Nice at about eight
or so in the morning, this was of no consequence; so when we began to
wink at the bright stars, in involuntary acknowledgment of their winking
at us, we turned into our berths, in a crowded, but cool little cabin,
and slept soundly till morning.
The Boat, being as dull and dogged a little boat as ever was built,
it was within an hour of noon when we turned into Nice Harbour, where
we very little expected anything but breakfast. But we were laden
with wool. Wool must not remain in the Custom-house at Marseilles
more than twelve months at a stretch, without paying duty. It
is the custom to make fictitious removals of unsold wool to evade this
law; to take it somewhere when the twelve months are nearly out; bring
it straight back again; and warehouse it, as a new cargo, for nearly
twelve months longer. This wool of ours, had come originally from
some place in the East. It was recognised as Eastern produce,
the moment we entered the harbour. Accordingly, the gay little
Sunday boats, full of holiday people, which had come off to greet us,
were warned away by the authorities; we were declared in quarantine;
and a great flag was solemnly run up to the mast-head on the wharf,
to make it known to all the town.
It was a very hot day indeed. We were unshaved, unwashed, undressed,
unfed, and could hardly enjoy the absurdity of lying blistering in a
lazy harbour, with the town looking on from a respectful distance, all
manner of whiskered men in cocked hats discussing our fate at a remote
guard-house, with gestures (we looked very hard at them through telescopes)
expressive of a week’s detention at least: and nothing whatever
the matter all the time. But even in this crisis the brave Courier
achieved a triumph. He telegraphed somebody (I saw nobody)
either naturally connected with the hotel, or put en rapport
with the establishment for that occasion only. The telegraph was
answered, and in half an hour or less, there came a loud shout from
the guard-house. The captain was wanted. Everybody helped
the captain into his boat. Everybody got his luggage, and said
we were going. The captain rowed away, and disappeared behind
a little jutting corner of the Galley-slaves’ Prison: and presently
came back with something, very sulkily. The brave Courier met
him at the side, and received the something as its rightful owner.
It was a wicker basket, folded in a linen cloth; and in it were two
great bottles of wine, a roast fowl, some salt fish chopped with garlic,
a great loaf of bread, a dozen or so of peaches, and a few other trifles.
When we had selected our own breakfast, the brave Courier invited a
chosen party to partake of these refreshments, and assured them that
they need not be deterred by motives of delicacy, as he would order
a second basket to be furnished at their expense. Which he did
- no one knew how - and by-and-by, the captain being again summoned,
again sulkily returned with another something; over which my popular
attendant presided as before: carving with a clasp-knife, his own personal
property, something smaller than a Roman sword.
The whole party on board were made merry by these unexpected supplies;
but none more so than a loquacious little Frenchman, who got drunk in
five minutes, and a sturdy Cappuccíno Friar, who had taken everybody’s
fancy mightily, and was one of the best friars in the world, I verily
believe.
He had a free, open countenance; and a rich brown, flowing beard; and
was a remarkably handsome man, of about fifty. He had come up
to us, early in the morning, and inquired whether we were sure to be
at Nice by eleven; saying that he particularly wanted to know, because
if we reached it by that time he would have to perform Mass, and must
deal with the consecrated wafer, fasting; whereas, if there were no
chance of his being in time, he would immediately breakfast. He
made this communication, under the idea that the brave Courier was the
captain; and indeed he looked much more like it than anybody else on
board. Being assured that we should arrive in good time, he fasted,
and talked, fasting, to everybody, with the most charming good humour;
answering jokes at the expense of friars, with other jokes at the expense
of laymen, and saying that, friar as he was, he would engage to take
up the two strongest men on board, one after the other, with his teeth,
and carry them along the deck. Nobody gave him the opportunity,
but I dare say he could have done it; for he was a gallant, noble figure
of a man, even in the Cappuccíno dress, which is the ugliest
and most ungainly that can well be.
All this had given great delight to the loquacious Frenchman, who gradually
patronised the Friar very much, and seemed to commiserate him as one
who might have been born a Frenchman himself, but for an unfortunate
destiny. Although his patronage was such as a mouse might bestow
upon a lion, he had a vast opinion of its condescension; and in the
warmth of that sentiment, occasionally rose on tiptoe, to slap the Friar
on the back.
When the baskets arrived: it being then too late for Mass: the Friar
went to work bravely: eating prodigiously of the cold meat and bread,
drinking deep draughts of the wine, smoking cigars, taking snuff, sustaining
an uninterrupted conversation with all hands, and occasionally running
to the boat’s side and hailing somebody on shore with the intelligence
that we must be got out of this quarantine somehow or other,
as he had to take part in a great religious procession in the afternoon.
After this, he would come back, laughing lustily from pure good humour:
while the Frenchman wrinkled his small face into ten thousand creases,
and said how droll it was, and what a brave boy was that Friar!
At length the heat of the sun without, and the wine within, made the
Frenchman sleepy. So, in the noontide of his patronage of his
gigantic protégé, he lay down among the wool, and began
to snore.
It was four o’clock before we were released; and the Frenchman,
dirty and woolly, and snuffy, was still sleeping when the Friar went
ashore. As soon as we were free, we all hurried away, to wash
and dress, that we might make a decent appearance at the procession;
and I saw no more of the Frenchman until we took up our station in the
main street to see it pass, when he squeezed himself into a front place,
elaborately renovated; threw back his little coat, to show a broad-barred
velvet waistcoat, sprinkled all over with stars; then adjusted himself
and his cane so as utterly to bewilder and transfix the Friar, when
he should appear.
The procession was a very long one, and included an immense number of
people divided into small parties; each party chanting nasally, on its
own account, without reference to any other, and producing a most dismal
result. There were angels, crosses, Virgins carried on flat boards
surrounded by Cupids, crowns, saints, missals, infantry, tapers, monks,
nuns, relics, dignitaries of the church in green hats, walking under
crimson parasols: and, here and there, a species of sacred street-lamp
hoisted on a pole. We looked out anxiously for the Cappuccíni,
and presently their brown robes and corded girdles were seen coming
on, in a body.
I observed the little Frenchman chuckle over the idea that when the
Friar saw him in the broad-barred waistcoat, he would mentally exclaim,
‘Is that my Patron! That distinguished man!’
and would be covered with confusion. Ah! never was the Frenchman
so deceived. As our friend the Cappuccíno advanced, with
folded arms, he looked straight into the visage of the little Frenchman,
with a bland, serene, composed abstraction, not to be described.
There was not the faintest trace of recognition or amusement on his
features; not the smallest consciousness of bread and meat, wine, snuff,
or cigars. ‘C’est lui-même,’ I heard the
little Frenchman say, in some doubt. Oh yes, it was himself.
It was not his brother or his nephew, very like him. It was he.
He walked in great state: being one of the Superiors of the Order: and
looked his part to admiration. There never was anything so perfect
of its kind as the contemplative way in which he allowed his placid
gaze to rest on us, his late companions, as if he had never seen us
in his life and didn’t see us then. The Frenchman, quite
humbled, took off his hat at last, but the Friar still passed on, with
the same imperturbable serenity; and the broad-barred waistcoat, fading
into the crowd, was seen no more.
The procession wound up with a discharge of musketry that shook all
the windows in the town. Next afternoon we started for Genoa,
by the famed Cornice road.
The half-French, half-Italian Vetturíno, who undertook, with
his little rattling carriage and pair, to convey us thither in three
days, was a careless, good-looking fellow, whose light-heartedness and
singing propensities knew no bounds as long as we went on smoothly.
So long, he had a word and a smile, and a flick of his whip, for all
the peasant girls, and odds and ends of the Sonnambula for all the echoes.
So long, he went jingling through every little village, with bells on
his horses and rings in his ears: a very meteor of gallantry and cheerfulness.
But, it was highly characteristic to see him under a slight reverse
of circumstances, when, in one part of the journey, we came to a narrow
place where a waggon had broken down and stopped up the road.
His hands were twined in his hair immediately, as if a combination of
all the direst accidents in life had suddenly fallen on his devoted
head. He swore in French, prayed in Italian, and went up and down,
beating his feet on the ground in a very ecstasy of despair. There
were various carters and mule-drivers assembled round the broken waggon,
and at last some man of an original turn of mind, proposed that a general
and joint effort should be made to get things to-rights again, and clear
the way - an idea which I verily believe would never have presented
itself to our friend, though we had remained there until now.
It was done at no great cost of labour; but at every pause in the doing,
his hands were wound in his hair again, as if there were no ray of hope
to lighten his misery. The moment he was on his box once more,
and clattering briskly down hill, he returned to the Sonnambula and
the peasant girls, as if it were not in the power of misfortune to depress
him.
Much of the romance of the beautiful towns and villages on this beautiful
road, disappears when they are entered, for many of them are very miserable.
The streets are narrow, dark, and dirty; the inhabitants lean and squalid;
and the withered old women, with their wiry grey hair twisted up into
a knot on the top of the head, like a pad to carry loads on, are so
intensely ugly, both along the Riviera, and in Genoa, too, that, seen
straggling about in dim doorways with their spindles, or crooning together
in by-corners, they are like a population of Witches - except that they
certainly are not to be suspected of brooms or any other instrument
of cleanliness. Neither are the pig-skins, in common use to hold
wine, and hung out in the sun in all directions, by any means ornamental,
as they always preserve the form of very bloated pigs, with their heads
and legs cut off, dangling upside-down by their own tails.
These towns, as they are seen in the approach, however: nestling, with
their clustering roofs and towers, among trees on steep hill-sides,
or built upon the brink of noble bays: are charming. The vegetation
is, everywhere, luxuriant and beautiful, and the Palm-tree makes a novel
feature in the novel scenery. In one town, San Remo - a most extraordinary
place, built on gloomy open arches, so that one might ramble underneath
the whole town - there are pretty terrace gardens; in other towns, there
is the clang of shipwrights’ hammers, and the building of small
vessels on the beach. In some of the broad bays, the fleets of
Europe might ride at anchor. In every case, each little group
of houses presents, in the distance, some enchanting confusion of picturesque
and fanciful shapes.
The road itself - now high above the glittering sea, which breaks against
the foot of the precipice: now turning inland to sweep the shore of
a bay: now crossing the stony bed of a mountain stream: now low down
on the beach: now winding among riven rocks of many forms and colours:
now chequered by a solitary ruined tower, one of a chain of towers built,
in old time, to protect the coast from the invasions of the Barbary
Corsairs - presents new beauties every moment. When its own striking
scenery is passed, and it trails on through a long line of suburb, lying
on the flat sea-shore, to Genoa, then, the changing glimpses of that
noble city and its harbour, awaken a new source of interest; freshened
by every huge, unwieldy, half-inhabited old house in its outskirts:
and coming to its climax when the city gate is reached, and all Genoa
with its beautiful harbour, and neighbouring hills, bursts proudly on
the view.
CHAPTER V - TO PARMA, MODENA, AND BOLOGNA
I strolled away from Genoa on the 6th of November, bound for a good
many places (England among them), but first for Piacenza; for which
town I started in the coupé of a machine something like
a travelling caravan, in company with the brave Courier, and a lady
with a large dog, who howled dolefully, at intervals, all night.
It was very wet, and very cold; very dark, and very dismal; we travelled
at the rate of barely four miles an hour, and stopped nowhere for refreshment.
At ten o’clock next morning, we changed coaches at Alessandria,
where we were packed up in another coach (the body whereof would have
been small for a fly), in company with a very old priest; a young Jesuit,
his companion - who carried their breviaries and other books, and who,
in the exertion of getting into the coach, had made a gash of pink leg
between his black stocking and his black knee-shorts, that reminded
one of Hamlet in Ophelia’s closet, only it was visible on both
legs - a provincial Avvocáto; and a gentleman with a red nose
that had an uncommon and singular sheen upon it, which I never observed
in the human subject before. In this way we travelled on, until
four o’clock in the afternoon; the roads being still very heavy,
and the coach very slow. To mend the matter, the old priest was
troubled with cramps in his legs, so that he had to give a terrible
yell every ten minutes or so, and be hoisted out by the united efforts
of the company; the coach always stopping for him, with great gravity.
This disorder, and the roads, formed the main subject of conversation.
Finding, in the afternoon, that the coupé had discharged
two people, and had only one passenger inside - a monstrous ugly Tuscan,
with a great purple moustache, of which no man could see the ends when
he had his hat on - I took advantage of its better accommodation, and
in company with this gentleman (who was very conversational and good-humoured)
travelled on, until nearly eleven o’clock at night, when the driver
reported that he couldn’t think of going any farther, and we accordingly
made a halt at a place called Stradella.
The inn was a series of strange galleries surrounding a yard where our
coach, and a waggon or two, and a lot of fowls, and firewood, were all
heaped up together, higgledy-piggledy; so that you didn’t know,
and couldn’t have taken your oath, which was a fowl and which
was a cart. We followed a sleepy man with a flaring torch, into
a great, cold room, where there were two immensely broad beds, on what
looked like two immensely broad deal dining-tables; another deal table
of similar dimensions in the middle of the bare floor; four windows;
and two chairs. Somebody said it was my room; and I walked up
and down it, for half an hour or so, staring at the Tuscan, the old
priest, the young priest, and the Avvocáto (Red-Nose lived in
the town, and had gone home), who sat upon their beds, and stared at
me in return.
The rather dreary whimsicality of this stage of the proceedings, is
interrupted by an announcement from the Brave (he had been cooking)
that supper is ready; and to the priest’s chamber (the next room
and the counterpart of mine) we all adjourn. The first dish is
a cabbage, boiled with a great quantity of rice in a tureen full of
water, and flavoured with cheese. It is so hot, and we are so
cold, that it appears almost jolly. The second dish is some little
bits of pork, fried with pigs’ kidneys. The third, two red
fowls. The fourth, two little red turkeys. The fifth, a
huge stew of garlic and truffles, and I don’t know what else;
and this concludes the entertainment.
Before I can sit down in my own chamber, and think it of the dampest,
the door opens, and the Brave comes moving in, in the middle of such
a quantity of fuel that he looks like Birnam Wood taking a winter walk.
He kindles this heap in a twinkling, and produces a jorum of hot brandy
and water; for that bottle of his keeps company with the seasons, and
now holds nothing but the purest eau de vie. When he has
accomplished this feat, he retires for the night; and I hear him, for
an hour afterwards, and indeed until I fall asleep, making jokes in
some outhouse (apparently under the pillow), where he is smoking cigars
with a party of confidential friends. He never was in the house
in his life before; but he knows everybody everywhere, before he has
been anywhere five minutes; and is certain to have attracted to himself,
in the meantime, the enthusiastic devotion of the whole establishment.
This is at twelve o’clock at night. At four o’clock
next morning, he is up again, fresher than a full-blown rose; making
blazing fires without the least authority from the landlord; producing
mugs of scalding coffee when nobody else can get anything but cold water;
and going out into the dark streets, and roaring for fresh milk, on
the chance of somebody with a cow getting up to supply it. While
the horses are ‘coming,’ I stumble out into the town too.
It seems to be all one little Piazza, with a cold damp wind blowing
in and out of the arches, alternately, in a sort of pattern. But
it is profoundly dark, and raining heavily; and I shouldn’t know
it to-morrow, if I were taken there to try. Which Heaven forbid.
The horses arrive in about an hour. In the interval, the driver
swears; sometimes Christian oaths, sometimes Pagan oaths. Sometimes,
when it is a long, compound oath, he begins with Christianity and merges
into Paganism. Various messengers are despatched; not so much
after the horses, as after each other; for the first messenger never
comes back, and all the rest imitate him. At length the horses
appear, surrounded by all the messengers; some kicking them, and some
dragging them, and all shouting abuse to them. Then, the old priest,
the young priest, the Avvocáto, the Tuscan, and all of us, take
our places; and sleepy voices proceeding from the doors of extraordinary
hutches in divers parts of the yard, cry out ‘Addio corrière
mio! Buon’ viággio, corrière!’
Salutations which the courier, with his face one monstrous grin, returns
in like manner as we go jolting and wallowing away, through the mud.
At Piacenza, which was four or five hours’ journey from the inn
at Stradella, we broke up our little company before the hotel door,
with divers manifestations of friendly feeling on all sides. The
old priest was taken with the cramp again, before he had got half-way
down the street; and the young priest laid the bundle of books on a
door-step, while he dutifully rubbed the old gentleman’s legs.
The client of the Avvocáto was waiting for him at the yard-gate,
and kissed him on each cheek, with such a resounding smack, that I am
afraid he had either a very bad case, or a scantily-furnished purse.
The Tuscan, with a cigar in his mouth, went loitering off, carrying
his hat in his hand that he might the better trail up the ends of his
dishevelled moustache. And the brave Courier, as he and I strolled
away to look about us, began immediately to entertain me with the private
histories and family affairs of the whole party.
A brown, decayed, old town, Piacenza is. A deserted, solitary,
grass-grown place, with ruined ramparts; half filled-up trenches, which
afford a frowsy pasturage to the lean kine that wander about them; and
streets of stern houses, moodily frowning at the other houses over the
way. The sleepiest and shabbiest of soldiery go wandering about,
with the double curse of laziness and poverty, uncouthly wrinkling their
misfitting regimentals; the dirtiest of children play with their impromptu
toys (pigs and mud) in the feeblest of gutters; and the gauntest of
dogs trot in and out of the dullest of archways, in perpetual search
of something to eat, which they never seem to find. A mysterious
and solemn Palace, guarded by two colossal statues, twin Genii of the
place, stands gravely in the midst of the idle town; and the king with
the marble legs, who flourished in the time of the thousand and one
Nights, might live contentedly inside of it, and never have the energy,
in his upper half of flesh and blood, to want to come out.
What a strange, half-sorrowful and half-delicious doze it is, to ramble
through these places gone to sleep and basking in the sun! Each,
in its turn, appears to be, of all the mouldy, dreary, God-forgotten
towns in the wide world, the chief. Sitting on this hillock where
a bastion used to be, and where a noisy fortress was, in the time of
the old Roman station here, I became aware that I have never known till
now, what it is to be lazy. A dormouse must surely be in very
much the same condition before he retires under the wool in his cage;
or a tortoise before he buries himself.
I feel that I am getting rusty. That any attempt to think, would
be accompanied with a creaking noise. That there is nothing, anywhere,
to be done, or needing to be done. That there is no more human
progress, motion, effort, or advancement, of any kind beyond this.
That the whole scheme stopped here centuries ago, and laid down to rest
until the Day of Judgment.
Never while the brave Courier lives! Behold him jingling out of
Piacenza, and staggering this way, in the tallest posting-chaise ever
seen, so that he looks out of the front window as if he were peeping
over a garden wall; while the postilion, concentrated essence of all
the shabbiness of Italy, pauses for a moment in his animated conversation,
to touch his hat to a blunt-nosed little Virgin, hardly less shabby
than himself, enshrined in a plaster Punch’s show outside the
town.
In Genoa, and thereabouts, they train the vines on trellis-work, supported
on square clumsy pillars, which, in themselves, are anything but picturesque.
But, here, they twine them around trees, and let them trail among the
hedges; and the vineyards are full of trees, regularly planted for this
purpose, each with its own vine twining and clustering about it.
Their leaves are now of the brightest gold and deepest red; and never
was anything so enchantingly graceful and full of beauty. Through
miles of these delightful forms and colours, the road winds its way.
The wild festoons, the elegant wreaths, and crowns, and garlands of
all shapes; the fairy nets flung over great trees, and making them prisoners
in sport; the tumbled heaps and mounds of exquisite shapes upon the
ground; how rich and beautiful they are! And every now and then,
a long, long line of trees, will be all bound and garlanded together:
as if they had taken hold of one another, and were coming dancing down
the field!
Parma has cheerful, stirring streets, for an Italian town; and consequently
is not so characteristic as many places of less note. Always excepting
the retired Piazza, where the Cathedral, Baptistery, and Campanile -
ancient buildings, of a sombre brown, embellished with innumerable grotesque
monsters and dreamy-looking creatures carved in marble and red stone
- are clustered in a noble and magnificent repose. Their silent
presence was only invaded, when I saw them, by the twittering of the
many birds that were flying in and out of the crevices in the stones
and little nooks in the architecture, where they had made their nests.
They were busy, rising from the cold shade of Temples made with hands,
into the sunny air of Heaven. Not so the worshippers within, who
were listening to the same drowsy chaunt, or kneeling before the same
kinds of images and tapers, or whispering, with their heads bowed down,
in the selfsame dark confessionals, as I had left in Genoa and everywhere
else.
The decayed and mutilated paintings with which this church is covered,
have, to my thinking, a remarkably mournful and depressing influence.
It is miserable to see great works of art - something of the Souls of
Painters - perishing and fading away, like human forms. This cathedral
is odorous with the rotting of Correggio’s frescoes in the Cupola.
Heaven knows how beautiful they may have been at one time. Connoisseurs
fall into raptures with them now; but such a labyrinth of arms and legs:
such heaps of foreshortened limbs, entangled and involved and jumbled
together: no operative surgeon, gone mad, could imagine in his wildest
delirium.
There is a very interesting subterranean church here: the roof supported
by marble pillars, behind each of which there seemed to be at least
one beggar in ambush: to say nothing of the tombs and secluded altars.
From every one of these lurking-places, such crowds of phantom-looking
men and women, leading other men and women with twisted limbs, or chattering
jaws, or paralytic gestures, or idiotic heads, or some other sad infirmity,
came hobbling out to beg, that if the ruined frescoes in the cathedral
above, had been suddenly animated, and had retired to this lower church,
they could hardly have made a greater confusion, or exhibited a more
confounding display of arms and legs.
There is Petrarch’s Monument, too; and there is the Baptistery,
with its beautiful arches and immense font; and there is a gallery containing
some very remarkable pictures, whereof a few were being copied by hairy-faced
artists, with little velvet caps more off their heads than on.
There is the Farnese Palace, too; and in it one of the dreariest spectacles
of decay that ever was seen - a grand, old, gloomy theatre, mouldering
away.
It is a large wooden structure, of the horse-shoe shape; the lower seats
arranged upon the Roman plan, but above them, great heavy chambers;
rather than boxes, where the Nobles sat, remote in their proud state.
Such desolation as has fallen on this theatre, enhanced in the spectator’s
fancy by its gay intention and design, none but worms can be familiar
with. A hundred and ten years have passed, since any play was
acted here. The sky shines in through the gashes in the roof;
the boxes are dropping down, wasting away, and only tenanted by rats;
damp and mildew smear the faded colours, and make spectral maps upon
the panels; lean rags are dangling down where there were gay festoons
on the Proscenium; the stage has rotted so, that a narrow wooden gallery
is thrown across it, or it would sink beneath the tread, and bury the
visitor in the gloomy depth beneath. The desolation and decay
impress themselves on all the senses. The air has a mouldering
smell, and an earthy taste; any stray outer sounds that straggle in
with some lost sunbeam, are muffled and heavy; and the worm, the maggot,
and the rot have changed the surface of the wood beneath the touch,
as time will seam and roughen a smooth hand. If ever Ghosts act
plays, they act them on this ghostly stage.
It was most delicious weather, when we came into Modena, where the darkness
of the sombre colonnades over the footways skirting the main street
on either side, was made refreshing and agreeable by the bright sky,
so wonderfully blue. I passed from all the glory of the day, into
a dim cathedral, where High Mass was performing, feeble tapers were
burning, people were kneeling in all directions before all manner of
shrines, and officiating priests were crooning the usual chant, in the
usual, low, dull, drawling, melancholy tone.
Thinking how strange it was, to find, in every stagnant town, this same
Heart beating with the same monotonous pulsation, the centre of the
same torpid, listless system, I came out by another door, and was suddenly
scared to death by a blast from the shrillest trumpet that ever was
blown. Immediately, came tearing round the corner, an equestrian
company from Paris: marshalling themselves under the walls of the church,
and flouting, with their horses’ heels, the griffins, lions, tigers,
and other monsters in stone and marble, decorating its exterior.
First, there came a stately nobleman with a great deal of hair, and
no hat, bearing an enormous banner, on which was inscribed, MAZEPPA!
TO-NIGHT! Then, a Mexican chief, with a great pear-shaped club
on his shoulder, like Hercules. Then, six or eight Roman chariots:
each with a beautiful lady in extremely short petticoats, and unnaturally
pink tights, erect within: shedding beaming looks upon the crowd, in
which there was a latent expression of discomposure and anxiety, for
which I couldn’t account, until, as the open back of each chariot
presented itself, I saw the immense difficulty with which the pink legs
maintained their perpendicular, over the uneven pavement of the town:
which gave me quite a new idea of the ancient Romans and Britons.
The procession was brought to a close, by some dozen indomitable warriors
of different nations, riding two and two, and haughtily surveying the
tame population of Modena: among whom, however, they occasionally condescended
to scatter largesse in the form of a few handbills. After caracolling
among the lions and tigers, and proclaiming that evening’s entertainments
with blast of trumpet, it then filed off, by the other end of the square,
and left a new and greatly increased dulness behind.
When the procession had so entirely passed away, that the shrill trumpet
was mild in the distance, and the tail of the last horse was hopelessly
round the corner, the people who had come out of the church to stare
at it, went back again. But one old lady, kneeling on the pavement
within, near the door, had seen it all, and had been immensely interested,
without getting up; and this old lady’s eye, at that juncture,
I happened to catch: to our mutual confusion. She cut our embarrassment
very short, however, by crossing herself devoutly, and going down, at
full length, on her face, before a figure in a fancy petticoat and a
gilt crown; which was so like one of the procession-figures, that perhaps
at this hour she may think the whole appearance a celestial vision.
Anyhow, I must certainly have forgiven her her interest in the Circus,
though I had been her Father Confessor.
There was a little fiery-eyed old man with a crooked shoulder, in the
cathedral, who took it very ill that I made no effort to see the bucket
(kept in an old tower) which the people of Modena took away from the
people of Bologna in the fourteenth century, and about which there was
war made and a mock-heroic poem by TASSONE, too. Being quite content,
however, to look at the outside of the tower, and feast, in imagination,
on the bucket within; and preferring to loiter in the shade of the tall
Campanile, and about the cathedral; I have no personal knowledge of
this bucket, even at the present time.
Indeed, we were at Bologna, before the little old man (or the Guide-Book)
would have considered that we had half done justice to the wonders of
Modena. But it is such a delight to me to leave new scenes behind,
and still go on, encountering newer scenes - and, moreover, I have such
a perverse disposition in respect of sights that are cut, and dried,
and dictated - that I fear I sin against similar authorities in every
place I visit.
Be this as it may, in the pleasant Cemetery at Bologna, I found myself
walking next Sunday morning, among the stately marble tombs and colonnades,
in company with a crowd of Peasants, and escorted by a little Cicerone
of that town, who was excessively anxious for the honour of the place,
and most solicitous to divert my attention from the bad monuments: whereas
he was never tired of extolling the good ones. Seeing this little
man (a good-humoured little man he was, who seemed to have nothing in
his face but shining teeth and eyes) looking wistfully at a certain
plot of grass, I asked him who was buried there. ‘The poor
people, Signore,’ he said, with a shrug and a smile, and stopping
to look back at me - for he always went on a little before, and took
off his hat to introduce every new monument. ‘Only the poor,
Signore! It’s very cheerful. It’s very lively.
How green it is, how cool! It’s like a meadow! There
are five,’ - holding up all the fingers of his right hand to express
the number, which an Italian peasant will always do, if it be within
the compass of his ten fingers, - ‘there are five of my little
children buried there, Signore; just there; a little to the right.
Well! Thanks to God! It’s very cheerful. How
green it is, how cool it is! It’s quite a meadow!’
He looked me very hard in the face, and seeing I was sorry for him,
took a pinch of snuff (every Cicerone takes snuff), and made a little
bow; partly in deprecation of his having alluded to such a subject,
and partly in memory of the children and of his favourite saint.
It was as unaffected and as perfectly natural a little bow, as ever
man made. Immediately afterwards, he took his hat off altogether,
and begged to introduce me to the next monument; and his eyes and his
teeth shone brighter than before.
CHAPTER VI - THROUGH BOLOGNA AND FERRARA
There was such a very smart official in attendance at the Cemetery where
the little Cicerone had buried his children, that when the little Cicerone
suggested to me, in a whisper, that there would be no offence in presenting
this officer, in return for some slight extra service, with a couple
of pauls (about tenpence, English money), I looked incredulously at
his cocked hat, wash-leather gloves, well-made uniform, and dazzling
buttons, and rebuked the little Cicerone with a grave shake of the head.
For, in splendour of appearance, he was at least equal to the Deputy
Usher of the Black Rod; and the idea of his carrying, as Jeremy Diddler
would say, ‘such a thing as tenpence’ away with him, seemed
monstrous. He took it in excellent part, however, when I made
bold to give it him, and pulled off his cocked hat with a flourish that
would have been a bargain at double the money.
It seemed to be his duty to describe the monuments to the people - at
all events he was doing so; and when I compared him, like Gulliver in
Brobdingnag, ‘with the Institutions of my own beloved country,
I could not refrain from tears of pride and exultation.’
He had no pace at all; no more than a tortoise. He loitered as
the people loitered, that they might gratify their curiosity; and positively
allowed them, now and then, to read the inscriptions on the tombs.
He was neither shabby, nor insolent, nor churlish, nor ignorant.
He spoke his own language with perfect propriety, and seemed to consider
himself, in his way, a kind of teacher of the people, and to entertain
a just respect both for himself and them. They would no more have
such a man for a Verger in Westminster Abbey, than they would let the
people in (as they do at Bologna) to see the monuments for nothing.
{2}
Again, an ancient sombre town, under the brilliant sky; with heavy arcades
over the footways of the older streets, and lighter and more cheerful
archways in the newer portions of the town. Again, brown piles
of sacred buildings, with more birds flying in and out of chinks in
the stones; and more snarling monsters for the bases of the pillars.
Again, rich churches, drowsy Masses, curling incense, tinkling bells,
priests in bright vestments: pictures, tapers, laced altar cloths, crosses,
images, and artificial flowers.
There is a grave and learned air about the city, and a pleasant gloom
upon it, that would leave it, a distinct and separate impression in
the mind, among a crowd of cities, though it were not still further
marked in the traveller’s remembrance by the two brick leaning
towers (sufficiently unsightly in themselves, it must be acknowledged),
inclining cross-wise as if they were bowing stiffly to each other -
a most extraordinary termination to the perspective of some of the narrow
streets. The colleges, and churches too, and palaces: and above
all the academy of Fine Arts, where there are a host of interesting
pictures, especially by GUIDO, DOMENICHINO, and LUDOVICO CARACCI: give
it a place of its own in the memory. Even though these were not,
and there were nothing else to remember it by, the great Meridian on
the pavement of the church of San Petronio, where the sunbeams mark
the time among the kneeling people, would give it a fanciful and pleasant
interest.
Bologna being very full of tourists, detained there by an inundation
which rendered the road to Florence impassable, I was quartered up at
the top of an hotel, in an out-of-the-way room which I never could find:
containing a bed, big enough for a boarding-school, which I couldn’t
fall asleep in. The chief among the waiters who visited this lonely
retreat, where there was no other company but the swallows in the broad
eaves over the window, was a man of one idea in connection with the
English; and the subject of this harmless monomania, was Lord Byron.
I made the discovery by accidentally remarking to him, at breakfast,
that the matting with which the floor was covered, was very comfortable
at that season, when he immediately replied that Milor Beeron had been
much attached to that kind of matting. Observing, at the same
moment, that I took no milk, he exclaimed with enthusiasm, that Milor
Beeron had never touched it. At first, I took it for granted,
in my innocence, that he had been one of the Beeron servants; but no,
he said, no, he was in the habit of speaking about my Lord, to English
gentlemen; that was all. He knew all about him, he said.
In proof of it, he connected him with every possible topic, from the
Monte Pulciano wine at dinner (which was grown on an estate he had owned),
to the big bed itself, which was the very model of his. When I
left the inn, he coupled with his final bow in the yard, a parting assurance
that the road by which I was going, had been Milor Beeron’s favourite
ride; and before the horse’s feet had well begun to clatter on
the pavement, he ran briskly up-stairs again, I dare say to tell some
other Englishman in some other solitary room that the guest who had
just departed was Lord Beeron’s living image.
I had entered Bologna by night - almost midnight - and all along the
road thither, after our entrance into the Papal territory: which is
not, in any part, supremely well governed, Saint Peter’s keys
being rather rusty now; the driver had so worried about the danger of
robbers in travelling after dark, and had so infected the brave Courier,
and the two had been so constantly stopping and getting up and down
to look after a portmanteau which was tied on behind, that I should
have felt almost obliged to any one who would have had the goodness
to take it away. Hence it was stipulated, that, whenever we left
Bologna, we should start so as not to arrive at Ferrara later than eight
at night; and a delightful afternoon and evening journey it was, albeit
through a flat district which gradually became more marshy from the
overflow of brooks and rivers in the recent heavy rains.
At sunset, when I was walking on alone, while the horses rested, I arrived
upon a little scene, which, by one of those singular mental operations
of which we are all conscious, seemed perfectly familiar to me, and
which I see distinctly now. There was not much in it. In
the blood red light, there was a mournful sheet of water, just stirred
by the evening wind; upon its margin a few trees. In the foreground
was a group of silent peasant girls leaning over the parapet of a little
bridge, and looking, now up at the sky, now down into the water; in
the distance, a deep bell; the shade of approaching night on everything.
If I had been murdered there, in some former life, I could not have
seemed to remember the place more thoroughly, or with a more emphatic
chilling of the blood; and the mere remembrance of it acquired in that
minute, is so strengthened by the imaginary recollection, that I hardly
think I could forget it.
More solitary, more depopulated, more deserted, old Ferrara, than any
city of the solemn brotherhood! The grass so grows up in the silent
streets, that any one might make hay there, literally, while the sun
shines. But the sun shines with diminished cheerfulness in grim
Ferrara; and the people are so few who pass and re-pass through the
places, that the flesh of its inhabitants might be grass indeed, and
growing in the squares.
I wonder why the head coppersmith in an Italian town, always lives next
door to the Hotel, or opposite: making the visitor feel as if the beating
hammers were his own heart, palpitating with a deadly energy!
I wonder why jealous corridors surround the bedroom on all sides, and
fill it with unnecessary doors that can’t be shut, and will not
open, and abut on pitchy darkness! I wonder why it is not enough
that these distrustful genii stand agape at one’s dreams all night,
but there must also be round open portholes, high in the wall, suggestive,
when a mouse or rat is heard behind the wainscot, of a somebody scraping
the wall with his toes, in his endeavours to reach one of these portholes
and look in! I wonder why the faggots are so constructed, as to
know of no effect but an agony of heat when they are lighted and replenished,
and an agony of cold and suffocation at all other times! I wonder,
above all, why it is the great feature of domestic architecture in Italian
inns, that all the fire goes up the chimney, except the smoke!
The answer matters little. Coppersmiths, doors, portholes, smoke,
and faggots, are welcome to me. Give me the smiling face of the
attendant, man or woman; the courteous manner; the amiable desire to
please and to be pleased; the light-hearted, pleasant, simple air -
so many jewels set in dirt - and I am theirs again to-morrow!
ARIOSTO’S house, TASSO’S prison, a rare old Gothic cathedral,
and more churches of course, are the sights of Ferrara. But the
long silent streets, and the dismantled palaces, where ivy waves in
lieu of banners, and where rank weeds are slowly creeping up the long-untrodden
stairs, are the best sights of all.
The aspect of this dreary town, half an hour before sunrise one fine
morning, when I left it, was as picturesque as it seemed unreal and
spectral. It was no matter that the people were not yet out of
bed; for if they had all been up and busy, they would have made but
little difference in that desert of a place. It was best to see
it, without a single figure in the picture; a city of the dead, without
one solitary survivor. Pestilence might have ravaged streets,
squares, and market-places; and sack and siege have ruined the old houses,
battered down their doors and windows, and made breaches in their roofs.
In one part, a great tower rose into the air; the only landmark in the
melancholy view. In another, a prodigious castle, with a moat
about it, stood aloof: a sullen city in itself. In the black dungeons
of this castle, Parisina and her lover were beheaded in the dead of
night. The red light, beginning to shine when I looked back upon
it, stained its walls without, as they have, many a time, been stained
within, in old days; but for any sign of life they gave, the castle
and the city might have been avoided by all human creatures, from the
moment when the axe went down upon the last of the two lovers: and might
have never vibrated to another sound
Beyond the blow that to the block
Pierced through with forced and sullen shock.
Coming to the Po, which was greatly swollen, and running fiercely, we
crossed it by a floating bridge of boats, and so came into the Austrian
territory, and resumed our journey: through a country of which, for
some miles, a great part was under water. The brave Courier and
the soldiery had first quarrelled, for half an hour or more, over our
eternal passport. But this was a daily relaxation with the Brave,
who was always stricken deaf when shabby functionaries in uniform came,
as they constantly did come, plunging out of wooden boxes to look at
it - or in other words to beg - and who, stone deaf to my entreaties
that the man might have a trifle given him, and we resume our journey
in peace, was wont to sit reviling the functionary in broken English:
while the unfortunate man’s face was a portrait of mental agony
framed in the coach window, from his perfect ignorance of what was being
said to his disparagement.
There was a postilion, in the course of this day’s journey, as
wild and savagely good-looking a vagabond as you would desire to see.
He was a tall, stout-made, dark-complexioned fellow, with a profusion
of shaggy black hair hanging all over his face, and great black whiskers
stretching down his throat. His dress was a torn suit of rifle
green, garnished here and there with red; a steeple-crowned hat, innocent
of nap, with a broken and bedraggled feather stuck in the band; and
a flaming red neckerchief hanging on his shoulders. He was not
in the saddle, but reposed, quite at his ease, on a sort of low foot-board
in front of the postchaise, down amongst the horses’ tails - convenient
for having his brains kicked out, at any moment. To this Brigand,
the brave Courier, when we were at a reasonable trot, happened to suggest
the practicability of going faster. He received the proposal with
a perfect yell of derision; brandished his whip about his head (such
a whip! it was more like a home-made bow); flung up his heels, much
higher than the horses; and disappeared, in a paroxysm, somewhere in
the neighbourhood of the axle-tree. I fully expected to see him
lying in the road, a hundred yards behind, but up came the steeple-crowned
hat again, next minute, and he was seen reposing, as on a sofa, entertaining
himself with the idea, and crying, ‘Ha, ha! what next! Oh
the devil! Faster too! Shoo - hoo - o - o!’
(This last ejaculation, an inexpressibly defiant hoot.) Being
anxious to reach our immediate destination that night, I ventured, by-and-by,
to repeat the experiment on my own account. It produced exactly
the same effect. Round flew the whip with the same scornful flourish,
up came the heels, down went the steeple-crowned hat, and presently
he reappeared, reposing as before and saying to himself, ‘Ha ha!
what next! Faster too! Oh the devil! Shoo - hoo -
o - o!’
CHAPTER VII - AN ITALIAN DREAM
I had been travelling, for some days; resting very little in the night,
and never in the day. The rapid and unbroken succession of novelties
that had passed before me, came back like half-formed dreams; and a
crowd of objects wandered in the greatest confusion through my mind,
as I travelled on, by a solitary road. At intervals, some one
among them would stop, as it were, in its restless flitting to and fro,
and enable me to look at it, quite steadily, and behold it in full distinctness.
After a few moments, it would dissolve, like a view in a magic-lantern;
and while I saw some part of it quite plainly, and some faintly, and
some not at all, would show me another of the many places I had lately
seen, lingering behind it, and coming through it. This was no
sooner visible than, in its turn, it melted into something else.
At one moment, I was standing again, before the brown old rugged churches
of Modena. As I recognised the curious pillars with grim monsters
for their bases, I seemed to see them, standing by themselves in the
quiet square at Padua, where there were the staid old University, and
the figures, demurely gowned, grouped here and there in the open space
about it. Then, I was strolling in the outskirts of that pleasant
city, admiring the unusual neatness of the dwelling-houses, gardens,
and orchards, as I had seen them a few hours before. In their
stead arose, immediately, the two towers of Bologna; and the most obstinate
of all these objects, failed to hold its ground, a minute, before the
monstrous moated castle of Ferrara, which, like an illustration to a
wild romance, came back again in the red sunrise, lording it over the
solitary, grass-grown, withered town. In short, I had that incoherent
but delightful jumble in my brain, which travellers are apt to have,
and are indolently willing to encourage. Every shake of the coach
in which I sat, half dozing in the dark, appeared to jerk some new recollection
out of its place, and to jerk some other new recollection into it; and
in this state I fell asleep.
I was awakened after some time (as I thought) by the stopping of the
coach. It was now quite night, and we were at the waterside.
There lay here, a black boat, with a little house or cabin in it of
the same mournful colour. When I had taken my seat in this, the
boat was paddled, by two men, towards a great light, lying in the distance
on the sea.
Ever and again, there was a dismal sigh of wind. It ruffled the
water, and rocked the boat, and sent the dark clouds flying before the
stars. I could not but think how strange it was, to be floating
away at that hour: leaving the land behind, and going on, towards this
light upon the sea. It soon began to burn brighter; and from being
one light became a cluster of tapers, twinkling and shining out of the
water, as the boat approached towards them by a dreamy kind of track,
marked out upon the sea by posts and piles.
We had floated on, five miles or so, over the dark water, when I heard
it rippling in my dream, against some obstruction near at hand.
Looking out attentively, I saw, through the gloom, a something black
and massive - like a shore, but lying close and flat upon the water,
like a raft - which we were gliding past. The chief of the two
rowers said it was a burial-place.
Full of the interest and wonder which a cemetery lying out there, in
the lonely sea, inspired, I turned to gaze upon it as it should recede
in our path, when it was quickly shut out from my view. Before
I knew by what, or how, I found that we were gliding up a street - a
phantom street; the houses rising on both sides, from the water, and
the black boat gliding on beneath their windows. Lights were shining
from some of these casements, plumbing the depth of the black stream
with their reflected rays, but all was profoundly silent.
So we advanced into this ghostly city, continuing to hold our course
through narrow streets and lanes, all filled and flowing with water.
Some of the corners where our way branched off, were so acute and narrow,
that it seemed impossible for the long slender boat to turn them; but
the rowers, with a low melodious cry of warning, sent it skimming on
without a pause. Sometimes, the rowers of another black boat like
our own, echoed the cry, and slackening their speed (as I thought we
did ours) would come flitting past us like a dark shadow. Other
boats, of the same sombre hue, were lying moored, I thought, to painted
pillars, near to dark mysterious doors that opened straight upon the
water. Some of these were empty; in some, the rowers lay asleep;
towards one, I saw some figures coming down a gloomy archway from the
interior of a palace: gaily dressed, and attended by torch-bearers.
It was but a glimpse I had of them; for a bridge, so low and close upon
the boat that it seemed ready to fall down and crush us: one of the
many bridges that perplexed the Dream: blotted them out, instantly.
On we went, floating towards the heart of this strange place - with
water all about us where never water was elsewhere - clusters of houses,
churches, heaps of stately buildings growing out of it - and, everywhere,
the same extraordinary silence. Presently, we shot across a broad
and open stream; and passing, as I thought, before a spacious paved
quay, where the bright lamps with which it was illuminated showed long
rows of arches and pillars, of ponderous construction and great strength,
but as light to the eye as garlands of hoarfrost or gossamer - and where,
for the first time, I saw people walking - arrived at a flight of steps
leading from the water to a large mansion, where, having passed through
corridors and galleries innumerable, I lay down to rest; listening to
the black boats stealing up and down below the window on the rippling
water, till I fell asleep.
The glory of the day that broke upon me in this Dream; its freshness,
motion, buoyancy; its sparkles of the sun in water; its clear blue sky
and rustling air; no waking words can tell. But, from my window,
I looked down on boats and barks; on masts, sails, cordage, flags; on
groups of busy sailors, working at the cargoes of these vessels; on
wide quays, strewn with bales, casks, merchandise of many kinds; on
great ships, lying near at hand in stately indolence; on islands, crowned
with gorgeous domes and turrets: and where golden crosses glittered
in the light, atop of wondrous churches, springing from the sea!
Going down upon the margin of the green sea, rolling on before the door,
and filling all the streets, I came upon a place of such surpassing
beauty, and such grandeur, that all the rest was poor and faded, in
comparison with its absorbing loveliness.
It was a great Piazza, as I thought; anchored, like all the rest, in
the deep ocean. On its broad bosom, was a Palace, more majestic
and magnificent in its old age, than all the buildings of the earth,
in the high prime and fulness of their youth. Cloisters and galleries:
so light, they might have been the work of fairy hands: so strong that
centuries had battered them in vain: wound round and round this palace,
and enfolded it with a Cathedral, gorgeous in the wild luxuriant fancies
of the East. At no great distance from its porch, a lofty tower,
standing by itself, and rearing its proud head, alone, into the sky,
looked out upon the Adriatic Sea. Near to the margin of the stream,
were two ill-omened pillars of red granite; one having on its top, a
figure with a sword and shield; the other, a winged lion. Not
far from these again, a second tower: richest of the rich in all its
decorations: even here, where all was rich: sustained aloft, a great
orb, gleaming with gold and deepest blue: the Twelve Signs painted on
it, and a mimic sun revolving in its course around them: while above,
two bronze giants hammered out the hours upon a sounding bell.
An oblong square of lofty houses of the whitest stone, surrounded by
a light and beautiful arcade, formed part of this enchanted scene; and,
here and there, gay masts for flags rose, tapering, from the pavement
of the unsubstantial ground.
I thought I entered the Cathedral, and went in and out among its many
arches: traversing its whole extent. A grand and dreamy structure,
of immense proportions; golden with old mosaics; redolent of perfumes;
dim with the smoke of incense; costly in treasure of precious stones
and metals, glittering through iron bars; holy with the bodies of deceased
saints; rainbow-hued with windows of stained glass; dark with carved
woods and coloured marbles; obscure in its vast heights, and lengthened
distances; shining with silver lamps and winking lights; unreal, fantastic,
solemn, inconceivable throughout. I thought I entered the old
palace; pacing silent galleries and council-chambers, where the old
rulers of this mistress of the waters looked sternly out, in pictures,
from the walls, and where her high-prowed galleys, still victorious
on canvas, fought and conquered as of old. I thought I wandered
through its halls of state and triumph - bare and empty now! - and musing
on its pride and might, extinct: for that was past; all past: heard
a voice say, ‘Some tokens of its ancient rule and some consoling
reasons for its downfall, may be traced here, yet!’
I dreamed that I was led on, then, into some jealous rooms, communicating
with a prison near the palace; separated from it by a lofty bridge crossing
a narrow street; and called, I dreamed, The Bridge of Sighs.
But first I passed two jagged slits in a stone wall; the lions’
mouths - now toothless - where, in the distempered horror of my sleep,
I thought denunciations of innocent men to the old wicked Council, had
been dropped through, many a time, when the night was dark. So,
when I saw the council-room to which such prisoners were taken for examination,
and the door by which they passed out, when they were condemned - a
door that never closed upon a man with life and hope before him - my
heart appeared to die within me.
It was smitten harder though, when, torch in hand, I descended from
the cheerful day into two ranges, one below another, of dismal, awful,
horrible stone cells. They were quite dark. Each had a loop-hole
in its massive wall, where, in the old time, every day, a torch was
placed - I dreamed - to light the prisoner within, for half an hour.
The captives, by the glimmering of these brief rays, had scratched and
cut inscriptions in the blackened vaults. I saw them. For
their labour with a rusty nail’s point, had outlived their agony
and them, through many generations.
One cell, I saw, in which no man remained for more than four-and-twenty
hours; being marked for dead before he entered it. Hard by, another,
and a dismal one, whereto, at midnight, the confessor came - a monk
brown-robed, and hooded - ghastly in the day, and free bright air, but
in the midnight of that murky prison, Hope’s extinguisher, and
Murder’s herald. I had my foot upon the spot, where, at
the same dread hour, the shriven prisoner was strangled; and struck
my hand upon the guilty door - low-browed and stealthy - through which
the lumpish sack was carried out into a boat, and rowed away, and drowned
where it was death to cast a net.
Around this dungeon stronghold, and above some part of it: licking the
rough walls without, and smearing them with damp and slime within: stuffing
dank weeds and refuse into chinks and crevices, as if the very stones
and bars had mouths to stop: furnishing a smooth road for the removal
of the bodies of the secret victims of the State - a road so ready that
it went along with them, and ran before them, like a cruel officer -
flowed the same water that filled this Dream of mine, and made it seem
one, even at the time.
Descending from the palace by a staircase, called, I thought, the Giant’s
- I had some imaginary recollection of an old man abdicating, coming,
more slowly and more feebly, down it, when he heard the bell, proclaiming
his successor - I glided off, in one of the dark boats, until we came
to an old arsenal guarded by four marble lions. To make my Dream
more monstrous and unlikely, one of these had words and sentences upon
its body, inscribed there, at an unknown time, and in an unknown language;
so that their purport was a mystery to all men.
There was little sound of hammers in this place for building ships,
and little work in progress; for the greatness of the city was no more,
as I have said. Indeed, it seemed a very wreck found drifting
on the sea; a strange flag hoisted in its honourable stations, and strangers
standing at its helm. A splendid barge in which its ancient chief
had gone forth, pompously, at certain periods, to wed the ocean, lay
here, I thought, no more; but, in its place, there was a tiny model,
made from recollection like the city’s greatness; and it told
of what had been (so are the strong and weak confounded in the dust)
almost as eloquently as the massive pillars, arches, roofs, reared to
overshadow stately ships that had no other shadow now, upon the water
or the earth.
An armoury was there yet. Plundered and despoiled; but an armoury.
With a fierce standard taken from the Turks, drooping in the dull air
of its cage. Rich suits of mail worn by great warriors were hoarded
there; crossbows and bolts; quivers full of arrows; spears; swords,
daggers, maces, shields, and heavy-headed axes. Plates of wrought
steel and iron, to make the gallant horse a monster cased in metal scales;
and one spring-weapon (easy to be carried in the breast) designed to
do its office noiselessly, and made for shooting men with poisoned darts.
One press or case I saw, full of accursed instruments of torture horribly
contrived to cramp, and pinch, and grind and crush men’s bones,
and tear and twist them with the torment of a thousand deaths.
Before it, were two iron helmets, with breast-pieces: made to close
up tight and smooth upon the heads of living sufferers; and fastened
on to each, was a small knob or anvil, where the directing devil could
repose his elbow at his ease, and listen, near the walled-up ear, to
the lamentations and confessions of the wretch within. There was
that grim resemblance in them to the human shape - they were such moulds
of sweating faces, pained and cramped - that it was difficult to think
them empty; and terrible distortions lingering within them, seemed to
follow me, when, taking to my boat again, I rowed off to a kind of garden
or public walk in the sea, where there were grass and trees. But
I forgot them when I stood upon its farthest brink - I stood there,
in my dream - and looked, along the ripple, to the setting sun; before
me, in the sky and on the deep, a crimson flush; and behind me the whole
city resolving into streaks of red and purple, on the water.
In the luxurious wonder of so rare a dream, I took but little heed of
time, and had but little understanding of its flight. But there
were days and nights in it; and when the sun was high, and when the
rays of lamps were crooked in the running water, I was still afloat,
I thought: plashing the slippery walls and houses with the cleavings
of the tide, as my black boat, borne upon it, skimmed along the streets.
Sometimes, alighting at the doors of churches and vast palaces, I wandered
on, from room to room, from aisle to aisle, through labyrinths of rich
altars, ancient monuments; decayed apartments where the furniture, half
awful, half grotesque, was mouldering away. Pictures were there,
replete with such enduring beauty and expression: with such passion,
truth and power: that they seemed so many young and fresh realities
among a host of spectres. I thought these, often intermingled
with the old days of the city: with its beauties, tyrants, captains,
patriots, merchants, counters, priests: nay, with its very stones, and
bricks, and public places; all of which lived again, about me, on the
walls. Then, coming down some marble staircase where the water
lapped and oozed against the lower steps, I passed into my boat again,
and went on in my dream.
Floating down narrow lanes, where carpenters, at work with plane and
chisel in their shops, tossed the light shaving straight upon the water,
where it lay like weed, or ebbed away before me in a tangled heap.
Past open doors, decayed and rotten from long steeping in the wet, through
which some scanty patch of vine shone green and bright, making unusual
shadows on the pavement with its trembling leaves. Past quays
and terraces, where women, gracefully veiled, were passing and repassing,
and where idlers were reclining in the sunshine, on flag-stones and
on flights of steps. Past bridges, where there were idlers too;
loitering and looking over. Below stone balconies, erected at
a giddy height, before the loftiest windows of the loftiest houses.
Past plots of garden, theatres, shrines, prodigious piles of architecture
- Gothic - Saracenic - fanciful with all the fancies of all times and
countries. Past buildings that were high, and low, and black,
and white, and straight, and crooked; mean and grand, crazy and strong.
Twining among a tangled lot of boats and barges, and shooting out at
last into a Grand Canal! There, in the errant fancy of my dream,
I saw old Shylock passing to and fro upon a bridge, all built upon with
shops and humming with the tongues of men; a form I seemed to know for
Desdemona’s, leaned down through a latticed blind to pluck a flower.
And, in the dream, I thought that Shakespeare’s spirit was abroad
upon the water somewhere: stealing through the city.
At night, when two votive lamps burnt before an image of the Virgin,
in a gallery outside the great cathedral, near the roof, I fancied that
the great piazza of the Winged Lion was a blaze of cheerful light, and
that its whole arcade was thronged with people; while crowds were diverting
themselves in splendid coffee-houses opening from it - which were never
shut, I thought, but open all night long. When the bronze giants
struck the hour of midnight on the bell, I thought the life and animation
of the city were all centred here; and as I rowed away, abreast the
silent quays, I only saw them dotted, here and there, with sleeping
boatmen wrapped up in their cloaks, and lying at full length upon the
stones.
But close about the quays and churches, palaces and prisons sucking
at their walls, and welling up into the secret places of the town: crept
the water always. Noiseless and watchful: coiled round and round
it, in its many folds, like an old serpent: waiting for the time, I
thought, when people should look down into its depths for any stone
of the old city that had claimed to be its mistress.
Thus it floated me away, until I awoke in the old market-place at Verona.
I have, many and many a time, thought since, of this strange Dream upon
the water: half-wondering if it lie there yet, and if its name be VENICE.
CHAPTER VIII - BY VERONA, MANTUA, AND MILAN, ACROSS THE PASS OF THE
SIMPLON INTO SWITZERLAND
I had been half afraid to go to Verona, lest it should at all put me
out of conceit with Romeo and Juliet. But, I was no sooner come
into the old market-place, than the misgiving vanished. It is
so fanciful, quaint, and picturesque a place, formed by such an extraordinary
and rich variety of fantastic buildings, that there could be nothing
better at the core of even this romantic town: scene of one of the most
romantic and beautiful of stories.
It was natural enough, to go straight from the Market-place, to the
House of the Capulets, now degenerated into a most miserable little
inn. Noisy vetturíni and muddy market-carts were disputing
possession of the yard, which was ankle-deep in dirt, with a brood of
splashed and bespattered geese; and there was a grim-visaged dog, viciously
panting in a doorway, who would certainly have had Romeo by the leg,
the moment he put it over the wall, if he had existed and been at large
in those times. The orchard fell into other hands, and was parted
off many years ago; but there used to be one attached to the house -
or at all events there may have, been, - and the hat (Cappêllo)
the ancient cognizance of the family, may still be seen, carved in stone,
over the gateway of the yard. The geese, the market-carts, their
drivers, and the dog, were somewhat in the way of the story, it must
be confessed; and it would have been pleasanter to have found the house
empty, and to have been able to walk through the disused rooms.
But the hat was unspeakably comfortable; and the place where the garden
used to be, hardly less so. Besides, the house is a distrustful,
jealous-looking house as one would desire to see, though of a very moderate
size. So I was quite satisfied with it, as the veritable mansion
of old Capulet, and was correspondingly grateful in my acknowledgments
to an extremely unsentimental middle-aged lady, the Padrona of the Hotel,
who was lounging on the threshold looking at the geese; and who at least
resembled the Capulets in the one particular of being very great indeed
in the ‘Family’ way.
From Juliet’s home, to Juliet’s tomb, is a transition as
natural to the visitor, as to fair Juliet herself, or to the proudest
Juliet that ever has taught the torches to burn bright in any time.
So, I went off, with a guide, to an old, old garden, once belonging
to an old, old convent, I suppose; and being admitted, at a shattered
gate, by a bright-eyed woman who was washing clothes, went down some
walks where fresh plants and young flowers were prettily growing among
fragments of old wall, and ivy-coloured mounds; and was shown a little
tank, or water-trough, which the bright-eyed woman - drying her arms
upon her ‘kerchief, called ‘La tomba di Giulietta la sfortunáta.’
With the best disposition in the world to believe, I could do no more
than believe that the bright-eyed woman believed; so I gave her that
much credit, and her customary fee in ready money. It was a pleasure,
rather than a disappointment, that Juliet’s resting-place was
forgotten. However consolatory it may have been to Yorick’s
Ghost, to hear the feet upon the pavement overhead, and, twenty times
a day, the repetition of his name, it is better for Juliet to lie out
of the track of tourists, and to have no visitors but such as come to
graves in spring-rain, and sweet air, and sunshine.
Pleasant Verona! With its beautiful old palaces, and charming
country in the distance, seen from terrace walks, and stately, balustraded
galleries. With its Roman gates, still spanning the fair street,
and casting, on the sunlight of to-day, the shade of fifteen hundred
years ago. With its marble-fitted churches, lofty towers, rich
architecture, and quaint old quiet thoroughfares, where shouts of Montagues
and Capulets once resounded,
And made Verona’s ancient citizens
Cast by their grave, beseeming ornaments,
To wield old partizans.
With its fast-rushing river, picturesque old bridge, great castle, waving
cypresses, and prospect so delightful, and so cheerful! Pleasant
Verona!
In the midst of it, in the Piazza di Brá - a spirit of old time
among the familiar realities of the passing hour - is the great Roman
Amphitheatre. So well preserved, and carefully maintained, that
every row of seats is there, unbroken. Over certain of the arches,
the old Roman numerals may yet be seen; and there are corridors, and
staircases, and subterranean passages for beasts, and winding ways,
above ground and below, as when the fierce thousands hurried in and
out, intent upon the bloody shows of the arena. Nestling in some
of the shadows and hollow places of the walls, now, are smiths with
their forges, and a few small dealers of one kind or other; and there
are green weeds, and leaves, and grass, upon the parapet. But
little else is greatly changed.
When I had traversed all about it, with great interest, and had gone
up to the topmost round of seats, and turning from the lovely panorama
closed in by the distant Alps, looked down into the building, it seemed
to lie before me like the inside of a prodigious hat of plaited straw,
with an enormously broad brim and a shallow crown; the plaits being
represented by the four-and-forty rows of seats. The comparison
is a homely and fantastic one, in sober remembrance and on paper, but
it was irresistibly suggested at the moment, nevertheless.
An equestrian troop had been there, a short time before - the same troop,
I dare say, that appeared to the old lady in the church at Modena -
and had scooped out a little ring at one end of the area; where their
performances had taken place, and where the marks of their horses’
feet were still fresh. I could not but picture to myself, a handful
of spectators gathered together on one or two of the old stone seats,
and a spangled Cavalier being gallant, or a Policinello funny, with
the grim walls looking on. Above all, I thought how strangely
those Roman mutes would gaze upon the favourite comic scene of the travelling
English, where a British nobleman (Lord John), with a very loose stomach:
dressed in a blue-tailed coat down to his heels, bright yellow breeches,
and a white hat: comes abroad, riding double on a rearing horse, with
an English lady (Lady Betsy) in a straw bonnet and green veil, and a
red spencer; and who always carries a gigantic reticule, and a put-up
parasol.
I walked through and through the town all the rest of the day, and could
have walked there until now, I think. In one place, there was
a very pretty modern theatre, where they had just performed the opera
(always popular in Verona) of Romeo and Juliet. In another there
was a collection, under a colonnade, of Greek, Roman, and Etruscan remains,
presided over by an ancient man who might have been an Etruscan relic
himself; for he was not strong enough to open the iron gate, when he
had unlocked it, and had neither voice enough to be audible when he
described the curiosities, nor sight enough to see them: he was so very
old. In another place, there was a gallery of pictures: so abominably
bad, that it was quite delightful to see them mouldering away.
But anywhere: in the churches, among the palaces, in the streets, on
the bridge, or down beside the river: it was always pleasant Verona,
and in my remembrance always will be.
I read Romeo and Juliet in my own room at the inn that night - of course,
no Englishman had ever read it there, before - and set out for Mantua
next day at sunrise, repeating to myself (in the coupé
of an omnibus, and next to the conductor, who was reading the Mysteries
of Paris),
There is no world without Verona’s walls
But purgatory, torture, hell itself.
Hence-banished is banished from the world,
And world’s exile is death -
which reminded me that Romeo was only banished five-and-twenty miles
after all, and rather disturbed my confidence in his energy and boldness.
Was the way to Mantua as beautiful, in his time, I wonder! Did
it wind through pasture land as green, bright with the same glancing
streams, and dotted with fresh clumps of graceful trees! Those
purple mountains lay on the horizon, then, for certain; and the dresses
of these peasant girls, who wear a great, knobbed, silver pin like an
English ‘life-preserver’ through their hair behind, can
hardly be much changed. The hopeful feeling of so bright a morning,
and so exquisite a sunrise, can have been no stranger, even to an exiled
lover’s breast; and Mantua itself must have broken on him in the
prospect, with its towers, and walls, and water, pretty much as on a
commonplace and matrimonial omnibus. He made the same sharp twists
and turns, perhaps, over two rumbling drawbridges; passed through the
like long, covered, wooden bridge; and leaving the marshy water behind,
approached the rusty gate of stagnant Mantua.
If ever a man were suited to his place of residence, and his place of
residence to him, the lean Apothecary and Mantua came together in a
perfect fitness of things. It may have been more stirring then,
perhaps. If so, the Apothecary was a man in advance of his time,
and knew what Mantua would be, in eighteen hundred and forty-four.
He fasted much, and that assisted him in his foreknowledge.
I put up at the Hotel of the Golden Lion, and was in my own room arranging
plans with the brave Courier, when there came a modest little tap at
the door, which opened on an outer gallery surrounding a court-yard;
and an intensely shabby little man looked in, to inquire if the gentleman
would have a Cicerone to show the town. His face was so very wistful
and anxious, in the half-opened doorway, and there was so much poverty
expressed in his faded suit and little pinched hat, and in the thread-bare
worsted glove with which he held it - not expressed the less, because
these were evidently his genteel clothes, hastily slipped on - that
I would as soon have trodden on him as dismissed him. I engaged
him on the instant, and he stepped in directly.
While I finished the discussion in which I was engaged, he stood, beaming
by himself in a corner, making a feint of brushing my hat with his arm.
If his fee had been as many napoleons as it was francs, there could
not have shot over the twilight of his shabbiness such a gleam of sun,
as lighted up the whole man, now that he was hired.
‘Well!’ said I, when I was ready, ‘shall we go out
now?’
‘If the gentleman pleases. It is a beautiful day.
A little fresh, but charming; altogether charming. The gentleman
will allow me to open the door. This is the Inn Yard. The
court-yard of the Golden Lion! The gentleman will please to mind
his footing on the stairs.’
We were now in the street.
‘This is the street of the Golden Lion. This, the outside
of the Golden Lion. The interesting window up there, on the first
Piano, where the pane of glass is broken, is the window of the gentleman’s
chamber!’
Having viewed all these remarkable objects, I inquired if there were
much to see in Mantua.
‘Well! Truly, no. Not much! So, so,’ he
said, shrugging his shoulders apologetically.
‘Many churches?’
‘No. Nearly all suppressed by the French.’
‘Monasteries or convents?’
‘No. The French again! Nearly all suppressed by Napoleon.’
‘Much business?’
‘Very little business.’
‘Many strangers?’
‘Ah Heaven!’
I thought he would have fainted.
‘Then, when we have seen the two large churches yonder, what shall
we do next?’ said I.
He looked up the street, and down the street, and rubbed his chin timidly;
and then said, glancing in my face as if a light had broken on his mind,
yet with a humble appeal to my forbearance that was perfectly irresistible:
‘We can take a little turn about the town, Signore!’
(Si può far ‘un píccolo gíro della citta).
It was impossible to be anything but delighted with the proposal, so
we set off together in great good-humour. In the relief of his
mind, he opened his heart, and gave up as much of Mantua as a Cicerone
could.
‘One must eat,’ he said; ‘but, bah! it was a dull
place, without doubt!’
He made as much as possible of the Basilica of Santa Andrea - a noble
church - and of an inclosed portion of the pavement, about which tapers
were burning, and a few people kneeling, and under which is said to
be preserved the Sangreal of the old Romances. This church disposed
of, and another after it (the cathedral of San Pietro), we went to the
Museum, which was shut up. ‘It was all the same,’
he said. ‘Bah! There was not much inside!’
Then, we went to see the Piazza del Diavolo, built by the Devil (for
no particular purpose) in a single night; then, the Piazza Virgiliana;
then, the statue of Virgil - our Poet, my little friend said,
plucking up a spirit, for the moment, and putting his hat a little on
one side. Then, we went to a dismal sort of farm-yard, by which
a picture-gallery was approached. The moment the gate of this
retreat was opened, some five hundred geese came waddling round us,
stretching out their necks, and clamouring in the most hideous manner,
as if they were ejaculating, ‘Oh! here’s somebody come to
see the Pictures! Don’t go up! Don’t go up!’
While we went up, they waited very quietly about the door in a crowd,
cackling to one another occasionally, in a subdued tone; but the instant
we appeared again, their necks came out like telescopes, and setting
up a great noise, which meant, I have no doubt, ‘What, you would
go, would you! What do you think of it! How do you like
it!’ they attended us to the outer gate, and cast us forth, derisively,
into Mantua.
The geese who saved the Capitol, were, as compared to these, Pork to
the learned Pig. What a gallery it was! I would take their
opinion on a question of art, in preference to the discourses of Sir
Joshua Reynolds.
Now that we were standing in the street, after being thus ignominiouly
escorted thither, my little friend was plainly reduced to the ‘píccolo
gíro,’ or little circuit of the town, he had formerly proposed.
But my suggestion that we should visit the Palazzo Tè (of which
I had heard a great deal, as a strange wild place) imparted new life
to him, and away we went.
The secret of the length of Midas’s ears, would have been more
extensively known, if that servant of his, who whispered it to the reeds,
had lived in Mantua, where there are reeds and rushes enough to have
published it to all the world. The Palazzo Tè stands in
a swamp, among this sort of vegetation; and is, indeed, as singular
a place as I ever saw.
Not for its dreariness, though it is very dreary. Not for its
dampness, though it is very damp. Nor for its desolate condition,
though it is as desolate and neglected as house can be. But chiefly
for the unaccountable nightmares with which its interior has been decorated
(among other subjects of more delicate execution), by Giulio Romano.
There is a leering Giant over a certain chimney-piece, and there are
dozens of Giants (Titans warring with Jove) on the walls of another
room, so inconceivably ugly and grotesque, that it is marvellous how
any man can have imagined such creatures. In the chamber in which
they abound, these monsters, with swollen faces and cracked cheeks,
and every kind of distortion of look and limb, are depicted as staggering
under the weight of falling buildings, and being overwhelmed in the
ruins; upheaving masses of rock, and burying themselves beneath; vainly
striving to sustain the pillars of heavy roofs that topple down upon
their heads; and, in a word, undergoing and doing every kind of mad
and demoniacal destruction. The figures are immensely large, and
exaggerated to the utmost pitch of uncouthness; the colouring is harsh
and disagreeable; and the whole effect more like (I should imagine)
a violent rush of blood to the head of the spectator, than any real
picture set before him by the hand of an artist. This apoplectic
performance was shown by a sickly-looking woman, whose appearance was
referable, I dare say, to the bad air of the marshes; but it was difficult
to help feeling as if she were too much haunted by the Giants, and they
were frightening her to death, all alone in that exhausted cistern of
a Palace, among the reeds and rushes, with the mists hovering about
outside, and stalking round and round it continually.
Our walk through Mantua showed us, in almost every street, some suppressed
church: now used for a warehouse, now for nothing at all: all as crazy
and dismantled as they could be, short of tumbling down bodily.
The marshy town was so intensely dull and flat, that the dirt upon it
seemed not to have come there in the ordinary course, but to have settled
and mantled on its surface as on standing water. And yet there
were some business-dealings going on, and some profits realising; for
there were arcades full of Jews, where those extraordinary people were
sitting outside their shops, contemplating their stores of stuffs, and
woollens, and bright handkerchiefs, and trinkets: and looking, in all
respects, as wary and business-like, as their brethren in Houndsditch,
London.
Having selected a Vetturíno from among the neighbouring Christians,
who agreed to carry us to Milan in two days and a half, and to start,
next morning, as soon as the gates were opened, I returned to the Golden
Lion, and dined luxuriously in my own room, in a narrow passage between
two bedsteads: confronted by a smoky fire, and backed up by a chest
of drawers. At six o’clock next morning, we were jingling
in the dark through the wet cold mist that enshrouded the town; and,
before noon, the driver (a native of Mantua, and sixty years of age
or thereabouts) began to ask the way to Milan.
It lay through Bozzolo; formerly a little republic, and now one of the
most deserted and poverty-stricken of towns: where the landlord of the
miserable inn (God bless him! it was his weekly custom) was distributing
infinitesimal coins among a clamorous herd of women and children, whose
rags were fluttering in the wind and rain outside his door, where they
were gathered to receive his charity. It lay through mist, and
mud, and rain, and vines trained low upon the ground, all that day and
the next; the first sleeping-place being Cremona, memorable for its
dark brick churches, and immensely high tower, the Torrazzo - to say
nothing of its violins, of which it certainly produces none in these
degenerate days; and the second, Lodi. Then we went on, through
more mud, mist, and rain, and marshy ground: and through such a fog,
as Englishmen, strong in the faith of their own grievances, are apt
to believe is nowhere to be found but in their own country, until we
entered the paved streets of Milan.
The fog was so dense here, that the spire of the far-famed Cathedral
might as well have been at Bombay, for anything that could be seen of
it at that time. But as we halted to refresh, for a few days then,
and returned to Milan again next summer, I had ample opportunities of
seeing the glorious structure in all its majesty and beauty.
All Christian homage to the saint who lies within it! There are
many good and true saints in the calendar, but San Carlo Borromeo has
- if I may quote Mrs. Primrose on such a subject - ‘my warm heart.’
A charitable doctor to the sick, a munificent friend to the poor, and
this, not in any spirit of blind bigotry, but as the bold opponent of
enormous abuses in the Romish church, I honour his memory. I honour
it none the less, because he was nearly slain by a priest, suborned,
by priests, to murder him at the altar: in acknowledgment of his endeavours
to reform a false and hypocritical brotherhood of monks. Heaven
shield all imitators of San Carlo Borromeo as it shielded him!
A reforming Pope would need a little shielding, even now.
The subterranean chapel in which the body of San Carlo Borromeo is preserved,
presents as striking and as ghastly a contrast, perhaps, as any place
can show. The tapers which are lighted down there, flash and gleam
on alti-rilievi in gold and silver, delicately wrought by skilful hands,
and representing the principal events in the life of the saint.
Jewels, and precious metals, shine and sparkle on every side.
A windlass slowly removes the front of the altar; and, within it, in
a gorgeous shrine of gold and silver, is seen, through alabaster, the
shrivelled mummy of a man: the pontifical robes with which it is adorned,
radiant with diamonds, emeralds, rubies: every costly and magnificent
gem. The shrunken heap of poor earth in the midst of this great
glitter, is more pitiful than if it lay upon a dung-hill. There
is not a ray of imprisoned light in all the flash and fire of jewels,
but seems to mock the dusty holes where eyes were, once. Every
thread of silk in the rich vestments seems only a provision from the
worms that spin, for the behoof of worms that propagate in sepulchres.
In the old refectory of the dilapidated Convent of Santa Maria delle
Grazie, is the work of art, perhaps, better known than any other in
the world: the Last Supper, by Leonardo da Vinci - with a door cut through
it by the intelligent Dominican friars, to facilitate their operations
at dinner-time.
I am not mechanically acquainted with the art of painting, and have
no other means of judging of a picture than as I see it resembling and
refining upon nature, and presenting graceful combinations of forms
and colours. I am, therefore, no authority whatever, in reference
to the ‘touch’ of this or that master; though I know very
well (as anybody may, who chooses to think about the matter) that few
very great masters can possibly have painted, in the compass of their
lives, one-half of the pictures that bear their names, and that are
recognised by many aspirants to a reputation for taste, as undoubted
originals. But this, by the way. Of the Last Supper, I would
simply observe, that in its beautiful composition and arrangement, there
it is, at Milan, a wonderful picture; and that, in its original colouring,
or in its original expression of any single face or feature, there it
is not. Apart from the damage it has sustained from damp, decay,
or neglect, it has been (as Barry shows) so retouched upon, and repainted,
and that so clumsily, that many of the heads are, now, positive deformities,
with patches of paint and plaster sticking upon them like wens, and
utterly distorting the expression. Where the original artist set
that impress of his genius on a face, which, almost in a line or touch,
separated him from meaner painters and made him what he was, succeeding
bunglers, filling up, or painting across seams and cracks, have been
quite unable to imitate his hand; and putting in some scowls, or frowns,
or wrinkles, of their own, have blotched and spoiled the work.
This is so well established as an historical fact, that I should not
repeat it, at the risk of being tedious, but for having observed an
English gentleman before the picture, who was at great pains to fall
into what I may describe as mild convulsions, at certain minute details
of expression which are not left in it. Whereas, it would be comfortable
and rational for travellers and critics to arrive at a general understanding
that it cannot fail to have been a work of extraordinary merit, once:
when, with so few of its original beauties remaining, the grandeur of
the general design is yet sufficient to sustain it, as a piece replete
with interest and dignity.
We achieved the other sights of Milan, in due course, and a fine city
it is, though not so unmistakably Italian as to possess the characteristic
qualities of many towns far less important in themselves. The
Corso, where the Milanese gentry ride up and down in carriages, and
rather than not do which, they would half starve themselves at home,
is a most noble public promenade, shaded by long avenues of trees.
In the splendid theatre of La Scala, there was a ballet of action performed
after the opera, under the title of Prometheus: in the beginning of
which, some hundred or two of men and women represented our mortal race
before the refinements of the arts and sciences, and loves and graces,
came on earth to soften them. I never saw anything more effective.
Generally speaking, the pantomimic action of the Italians is more remarkable
for its sudden and impetuous character than for its delicate expression,
but, in this case, the drooping monotony: the weary, miserable, listless,
moping life: the sordid passions and desires of human creatures, destitute
of those elevating influences to which we owe so much, and to whose
promoters we render so little: were expressed in a manner really powerful
and affecting. I should have thought it almost impossible to present
such an idea so strongly on the stage, without the aid of speech.
Milan soon lay behind us, at five o’clock in the morning; and
before the golden statue on the summit of the cathedral spire was lost
in the blue sky, the Alps, stupendously confused in lofty peaks and
ridges, clouds and snow, were towering in our path.
Still, we continued to advance toward them until nightfall; and, all
day long, the mountain tops presented strangely shifting shapes, as
the road displayed them in different points of view. The beautiful
day was just declining, when we came upon the Lago Maggiore, with its
lovely islands. For however fanciful and fantastic the Isola Bella
may be, and is, it still is beautiful. Anything springing out
of that blue water, with that scenery around it, must be.
It was ten o’clock at night when we got to Domo d’Ossola,
at the foot of the Pass of the Simplon. But as the moon was shining
brightly, and there was not a cloud in the starlit sky, it was no time
for going to bed, or going anywhere but on. So, we got a little
carriage, after some delay, and began the ascent.
It was late in November; and the snow lying four or five feet thick
in the beaten road on the summit (in other parts the new drift was already
deep), the air was piercing cold. But, the serenity of the night,
and the grandeur of the road, with its impenetrable shadows, and deep
glooms, and its sudden turns into the shining of the moon and its incessant
roar of falling water, rendered the journey more and more sublime at
every step.
Soon leaving the calm Italian villages below us, sleeping in the moonlight,
the road began to wind among dark trees, and after a time emerged upon
a barer region, very steep and toilsome, where the moon shone bright
and high. By degrees, the roar of water grew louder; and the stupendous
track, after crossing the torrent by a bridge, struck in between two
massive perpendicular walls of rock that quite shut out the moonlight,
and only left a few stars shining in the narrow strip of sky above.
Then, even this was lost, in the thick darkness of a cavern in the rock,
through which the way was pierced; the terrible cataract thundering
and roaring close below it, and its foam and spray hanging, in a mist,
about the entrance. Emerging from this cave, and coming again
into the moonlight, and across a dizzy bridge, it crept and twisted
upward, through the Gorge of Gondo, savage and grand beyond description,
with smooth-fronted precipices, rising up on either hand, and almost
meeting overhead. Thus we went, climbing on our rugged way, higher
and higher all night, without a moment’s weariness: lost in the
contemplation of the black rocks, the tremendous heights and depths,
the fields of smooth snow lying, in the clefts and hollows, and the
fierce torrents thundering headlong down the deep abyss.
Towards daybreak, we came among the snow, where a keen wind was blowing
fiercely. Having, with some trouble, awakened the inmates of a
wooden house in this solitude: round which the wind was howling dismally,
catching up the snow in wreaths and hurling it away: we got some breakfast
in a room built of rough timbers, but well warmed by a stove, and well
contrived (as it had need to be) for keeping out the bitter storms.
A sledge being then made ready, and four horses harnessed to it, we
went, ploughing, through the snow. Still upward, but now in the
cold light of morning, and with the great white desert on which we travelled,
plain and clear.
We were well upon the summit of the mountain: and had before us the
rude cross of wood, denoting its greatest altitude above the sea: when
the light of the rising sun, struck, all at once, upon the waste of
snow, and turned it a deep red. The lonely grandeur of the scene
was then at its height.
As we went sledging on, there came out of the Hospice founded by Napoleon,
a group of Peasant travellers, with staves and knapsacks, who had rested
there last night: attended by a Monk or two, their hospitable entertainers,
trudging slowly forward with them, for company’s sake. It
was pleasant to give them good morning, and pretty, looking back a long
way after them, to see them looking back at us, and hesitating presently,
when one of our horses stumbled and fell, whether or no they should
return and help us. But he was soon up again, with the assistance
of a rough waggoner whose team had stuck fast there too; and when we
had helped him out of his difficulty, in return, we left him slowly
ploughing towards them, and went slowly and swiftly forward, on the
brink of a steep precipice, among the mountain pines.
Taking to our wheels again, soon afterwards, we began rapidly to descend;
passing under everlasting glaciers, by means of arched galleries, hung
with clusters of dripping icicles; under and over foaming waterfalls;
near places of refuge, and galleries of shelter against sudden danger;
through caverns over whose arched roofs the avalanches slide, in spring,
and bury themselves in the unknown gulf beneath. Down, over lofty
bridges, and through horrible ravines: a little shifting speck in the
vast desolation of ice and snow, and monstrous granite rocks; down through
the deep Gorge of the Saltine, and deafened by the torrent plunging
madly down, among the riven blocks of rock, into the level country,
far below. Gradually down, by zig-zag roads, lying between an
upward and a downward precipice, into warmer weather, calmer air, and
softer scenery, until there lay before us, glittering like gold or silver
in the thaw and sunshine, the metal-covered, red, green, yellow, domes
and church-spires of a Swiss town.
The business of these recollections being with Italy, and my business,
consequently, being to scamper back thither as fast as possible, I will
not recall (though I am sorely tempted) how the Swiss villages, clustered
at the feet of Giant mountains, looked like playthings; or how confusedly
the houses were heaped and piled together; or how there were very narrow
streets to shut the howling winds out in the winter-time; and broken
bridges, which the impetuous torrents, suddenly released in spring,
had swept away. Or how there were peasant women here, with great
round fur caps: looking, when they peeped out of casements and only
their heads were seen, like a population of Sword-bearers to the Lord
Mayor of London; or how the town of Vevey, lying on the smooth lake
of Geneva, was beautiful to see; or how the statue of Saint Peter in
the street at Fribourg, grasps the largest key that ever was beheld;
or how Fribourg is illustrious for its two suspension bridges, and its
grand cathedral organ.
Or how, between that town and Bâle, the road meandered among thriving
villages of wooden cottages, with overhanging thatched roofs, and low
protruding windows, glazed with small round panes of glass like crown-pieces;
or how, in every little Swiss homestead, with its cart or waggon carefully
stowed away beside the house, its little garden, stock of poultry, and
groups of red-cheeked children, there was an air of comfort, very new
and very pleasant after Italy; or how the dresses of the women changed
again, and there were no more sword-bearers to be seen; and fair white
stomachers, and great black, fan-shaped, gauzy-looking caps, prevailed
instead.
Or how the country by the Jura mountains, sprinkled with snow, and lighted
by the moon, and musical with falling water, was delightful; or how,
below the windows of the great hotel of the Three Kings at Bâle,
the swollen Rhine ran fast and green; or how, at Strasbourg, it was
quite as fast but not as green: and was said to be foggy lower down:
and, at that late time of the year, was a far less certain means of
progress, than the highway road to Paris.
Or how Strasbourg itself, in its magnificent old Gothic Cathedral, and
its ancient houses with their peaked roofs and gables, made a little
gallery of quaint and interesting views; or how a crowd was gathered
inside the cathedral at noon, to see the famous mechanical clock in
motion, striking twelve. How, when it struck twelve, a whole army
of puppets went through many ingenious evolutions; and, among them,
a huge puppet-cock, perched on the top, crowed twelve times, loud and
clear. Or how it was wonderful to see this cock at great pains
to clap its wings, and strain its throat; but obviously having no connection
whatever with its own voice; which was deep within the clock, a long
way down.
Or how the road to Paris, was one sea of mud, and thence to the coast,
a little better for a hard frost. Or how the cliffs of Dover were
a pleasant sight, and England was so wonderfully neat - though dark,
and lacking colour on a winter’s day, it must be conceded.
Or how, a few days afterwards, it was cool, re-crossing the channel,
with ice upon the decks, and snow lying pretty deep in France.
Or how the Malle Poste scrambled through the snow, headlong, drawn in
the hilly parts by any number of stout horses at a canter; or how there
were, outside the Post-office Yard in Paris, before daybreak, extraordinary
adventurers in heaps of rags, groping in the snowy streets with little
rakes, in search of odds and ends.
Or how, between Paris and Marseilles, the snow being then exceeding
deep, a thaw came on, and the mail waded rather than rolled for the
next three hundred miles or so; breaking springs on Sunday nights, and
putting out its two passengers to warm and refresh themselves pending
the repairs, in miserable billiard-rooms, where hairy company, collected
about stoves, were playing cards; the cards being very like themselves
- extremely limp and dirty.
Or how there was detention at Marseilles from stress of weather; and
steamers were advertised to go, which did not go; or how the good Steam-packet
Charlemagne at length put out, and met such weather that now she threatened
to run into Toulon, and now into Nice, but, the wind moderating, did
neither, but ran on into Genoa harbour instead, where the familiar Bells
rang sweetly in my ear. Or how there was a travelling party on
board, of whom one member was very ill in the cabin next to mine, and
being ill was cross, and therefore declined to give up the Dictionary,
which he kept under his pillow; thereby obliging his companions to come
down to him, constantly, to ask what was the Italian for a lump of sugar
- a glass of brandy and water - what’s o’clock? and so forth:
which he always insisted on looking out, with his own sea-sick eyes,
declining to entrust the book to any man alive.
Like GRUMIO, I might have told you, in detail, all this and something
more - but to as little purpose - were I not deterred by the remembrance
that my business is with Italy. Therefore, like GRUMIO’S
story, ‘it shall die in oblivion.’
CHAPTER IX - TO ROME BY PISA AND SIENA
There is nothing in Italy, more beautiful to me, than the coast-road
between Genoa and Spezzia. On one side: sometimes far below, sometimes
nearly on a level with the road, and often skirted by broken rocks of
many shapes: there is the free blue sea, with here and there a picturesque
felucca gliding slowly on; on the other side are lofty hills, ravines
besprinkled with white cottages, patches of dark olive woods, country
churches with their light open towers, and country houses gaily painted.
On every bank and knoll by the wayside, the wild cactus and aloe flourish
in exuberant profusion; and the gardens of the bright villages along
the road, are seen, all blushing in the summer-time with clusters of
the Belladonna, and are fragrant in the autumn and winter with golden
oranges and lemons.
Some of the villages are inhabited, almost exclusively, by fishermen;
and it is pleasant to see their great boats hauled up on the beach,
making little patches of shade, where they lie asleep, or where the
women and children sit romping and looking out to sea, while they mend
their nets upon the shore. There is one town, Camoglia, with its
little harbour on the sea, hundreds of feet below the road; where families
of mariners live, who, time out of mind, have owned coasting-vessels
in that place, and have traded to Spain and elsewhere. Seen from
the road above, it is like a tiny model on the margin of the dimpled
water, shining in the sun. Descended into, by the winding mule-tracks,
it is a perfect miniature of a primitive seafaring town; the saltest,
roughest, most piratical little place that ever was seen. Great
rusty iron rings and mooring-chains, capstans, and fragments of old
masts and spars, choke up the way; hardy rough-weather boats, and seamen’s
clothing, flutter in the little harbour or are drawn out on the sunny
stones to dry; on the parapet of the rude pier, a few amphibious-looking
fellows lie asleep, with their legs dangling over the wall, as though
earth or water were all one to them, and if they slipped in, they would
float away, dozing comfortably among the fishes; the church is bright
with trophies of the sea, and votive offerings, in commemoration of
escape from storm and shipwreck. The dwellings not immediately
abutting on the harbour are approached by blind low archways, and by
crooked steps, as if in darkness and in difficulty of access they should
be like holds of ships, or inconvenient cabins under water; and everywhere,
there is a smell of fish, and sea-weed, and old rope.
The coast-road whence Camoglia is descried so far below, is famous,
in the warm season, especially in some parts near Genoa, for fire-flies.
Walking there on a dark night, I have seen it made one sparkling firmament
by these beautiful insects: so that the distant stars were pale against
the flash and glitter that spangled every olive wood and hill-side,
and pervaded the whole air.
It was not in such a season, however, that we traversed this road on
our way to Rome. The middle of January was only just past, and
it was very gloomy and dark weather; very wet besides. In crossing
the fine pass of Bracco, we encountered such a storm of mist and rain,
that we travelled in a cloud the whole way. There might have been
no Mediterranean in the world, for anything that we saw of it there,
except when a sudden gust of wind, clearing the mist before it, for
a moment, showed the agitated sea at a great depth below, lashing the
distant rocks, and spouting up its foam furiously. The rain was
incessant; every brook and torrent was greatly swollen; and such a deafening
leaping, and roaring, and thundering of water, I never heard the like
of in my life.
Hence, when we came to Spezzia, we found that the Magra, an unbridged
river on the high-road to Pisa, was too high to be safely crossed in
the Ferry Boat, and were fain to wait until the afternoon of next day,
when it had, in some degree, subsided. Spezzia, however, is a
good place to tarry at; by reason, firstly, of its beautiful bay; secondly,
of its ghostly Inn; thirdly, of the head-dress of the women, who wear,
on one side of their head, a small doll’s straw hat, stuck on
to the hair; which is certainly the oddest and most roguish head-gear
that ever was invented.
The Magra safely crossed in the Ferry Boat - the passage is not by any
means agreeable, when the current is swollen and strong - we arrived
at Carrara, within a few hours. In good time next morning, we
got some ponies, and went out to see the marble quarries.
They are four or five great glens, running up into a range of lofty
hills, until they can run no longer, and are stopped by being abruptly
strangled by Nature. The quarries, ‘or caves,’ as
they call them there, are so many openings, high up in the hills, on
either side of these passes, where they blast and excavate for marble:
which may turn out good or bad: may make a man’s fortune very
quickly, or ruin him by the great expense of working what is worth nothing.
Some of these caves were opened by the ancient Romans, and remain as
they left them to this hour. Many others are being worked at this
moment; others are to be begun to-morrow, next week, next month; others
are unbought, unthought of; and marble enough for more ages than have
passed since the place was resorted to, lies hidden everywhere: patiently
awaiting its time of discovery.
As you toil and clamber up one of these steep gorges (having left your
pony soddening his girths in water, a mile or two lower down) you hear,
every now and then, echoing among the hills, in a low tone, more silent
than the previous silence, a melancholy warning bugle, - a signal to
the miners to withdraw. Then, there is a thundering, and echoing
from hill to hill, and perhaps a splashing up of great fragments of
rock into the air; and on you toil again until some other bugle sounds,
in a new direction, and you stop directly, lest you should come within
the range of the new explosion.
There were numbers of men, working high up in these hills - on the sides
- clearing away, and sending down the broken masses of stone and earth,
to make way for the blocks of marble that had been discovered.
As these came rolling down from unseen hands into the narrow valley,
I could not help thinking of the deep glen (just the same sort of glen)
where the Roc left Sindbad the Sailor; and where the merchants from
the heights above, flung down great pieces of meat for the diamonds
to stick to. There were no eagles here, to darken the sun in their
swoop, and pounce upon them; but it was as wild and fierce as if there
had been hundreds.
But the road, the road down which the marble comes, however immense
the blocks! The genius of the country, and the spirit of its institutions,
pave that road: repair it, watch it, keep it going! Conceive a
channel of water running over a rocky bed, beset with great heaps of
stone of all shapes and sizes, winding down the middle of this valley;
and that being the road - because it was the road five hundred
years ago! Imagine the clumsy carts of five hundred years ago,
being used to this hour, and drawn, as they used to be, five hundred
years ago, by oxen, whose ancestors were worn to death five hundred
years ago, as their unhappy descendants are now, in twelve months, by
the suffering and agony of this cruel work! Two pair, four pair,
ten pair, twenty pair, to one block, according to its size; down it
must come, this way. In their struggling from stone to stone,
with their enormous loads behind them, they die frequently upon the
spot; and not they alone; for their passionate drivers, sometimes tumbling
down in their energy, are crushed to death beneath the wheels.
But it was good five hundred years ago, and it must be good now: and
a railroad down one of these steeps (the easiest thing in the world)
would be flat blasphemy.
When we stood aside, to see one of these cars drawn by only a pair of
oxen (for it had but one small block of marble on it), coming down,
I hailed, in my heart, the man who sat upon the heavy yoke, to keep
it on the neck of the poor beasts - and who faced backwards: not before
him - as the very Devil of true despotism. He had a great rod
in his hand, with an iron point; and when they could plough and force
their way through the loose bed of the torrent no longer, and came to
a stop, he poked it into their bodies, beat it on their heads, screwed
it round and round in their nostrils, got them on a yard or two, in
the madness of intense pain; repeated all these persuasions, with increased
intensity of purpose, when they stopped again; got them on, once more;
forced and goaded them to an abrupter point of the descent; and when
their writhing and smarting, and the weight behind them, bore them plunging
down the precipice in a cloud of scattered water, whirled his rod above
his head, and gave a great whoop and hallo, as if he had achieved something,
and had no idea that they might shake him off, and blindly mash his
brains upon the road, in the noontide of his triumph.
Standing in one of the many studii of Carrara, that afternoon - for
it is a great workshop, full of beautifully-finished copies in marble,
of almost every figure, group, and bust, we know - it seemed, at first,
so strange to me that those exquisite shapes, replete with grace, and
thought, and delicate repose, should grow out of all this toil, and
sweat, and torture! But I soon found a parallel to it, and an
explanation of it, in every virtue that springs up in miserable ground,
and every good thing that has its birth in sorrow and distress.
And, looking out of the sculptor’s great window, upon the marble
mountains, all red and glowing in the decline of day, but stern and
solemn to the last, I thought, my God! how many quarries of human hearts
and souls, capable of far more beautiful results, are left shut up and
mouldering away: while pleasure-travellers through life, avert their
faces, as they pass, and shudder at the gloom and ruggedness that conceal
them!
The then reigning Duke of Modena, to whom this territory in part belonged,
claimed the proud distinction of being the only sovereign in Europe
who had not recognised Louis-Philippe as King of the French! He
was not a wag, but quite in earnest. He was also much opposed
to railroads; and if certain lines in contemplation by other potentates,
on either side of him, had been executed, would have probably enjoyed
the satisfaction of having an omnibus plying to and fro across his not
very vast dominions, to forward travellers from one terminus to another.
Carrara, shut in by great hills, is very picturesque and bold.
Few tourists stay there; and the people are nearly all connected, in
one way or other, with the working of marble. There are also villages
among the caves, where the workmen live. It contains a beautiful
little Theatre, newly built; and it is an interesting custom there,
to form the chorus of labourers in the marble quarries, who are self-taught
and sing by ear. I heard them in a comic opera, and in an act
of ‘Norma;’ and they acquitted themselves very well; unlike
the common people of Italy generally, who (with some exceptions among
the Neapolitans) sing vilely out of tune, and have very disagreeable
singing voices.
From the summit of a lofty hill beyond Carrara, the first view of the
fertile plain in which the town of Pisa lies - with Leghorn, a purple
spot in the flat distance - is enchanting. Nor is it only distance
that lends enchantment to the view; for the fruitful country, and rich
woods of olive-trees through which the road subsequently passes, render
it delightful.
The moon was shining when we approached Pisa, and for a long time we
could see, behind the wall, the leaning Tower, all awry in the uncertain
light; the shadowy original of the old pictures in school-books, setting
forth ‘The Wonders of the World.’ Like most things
connected in their first associations with school-books and school-times,
it was too small. I felt it keenly. It was nothing like
so high above the wall as I had hoped. It was another of the many
deceptions practised by Mr. Harris, Bookseller, at the corner of St.
Paul’s Churchyard, London. His Tower was a fiction,
but this was a reality - and, by comparison, a short reality.
Still, it looked very well, and very strange, and was quite as much
out of the perpendicular as Harris had represented it to be. The
quiet air of Pisa too; the big guard-house at the gate, with only two
little soldiers in it; the streets with scarcely any show of people
in them; and the Arno, flowing quaintly through the centre of the town;
were excellent. So, I bore no malice in my heart against Mr. Harris
(remembering his good intentions), but forgave him before dinner, and
went out, full of confidence, to see the Tower next morning.
I might have known better; but, somehow, I had expected to see it, casting
its long shadow on a public street where people came and went all day.
It was a surprise to me to find it in a grave retired place, apart from
the general resort, and carpeted with smooth green turf. But,
the group of buildings, clustered on and about this verdant carpet:
comprising the Tower, the Baptistery, the Cathedral, and the Church
of the Campo Santo: is perhaps the most remarkable and beautiful in
the whole world; and from being clustered there, together, away from
the ordinary transactions and details of the town, they have a singularly
venerable and impressive character. It is the architectural essence
of a rich old city, with all its common life and common habitations
pressed out, and filtered away.
SIMOND compares the Tower to the usual pictorial representations in
children’s books of the Tower of Babel. It is a happy simile,
and conveys a better idea of the building than chapters of laboured
description. Nothing can exceed the grace and lightness of the
structure; nothing can be more remarkable than its general appearance.
In the course of the ascent to the top (which is by an easy staircase),
the inclination is not very apparent; but, at the summit, it becomes
so, and gives one the sensation of being in a ship that has heeled over,
through the action of an ebb-tide. The effect upon the low
side, so to speak - looking over from the gallery, and seeing the
shaft recede to its base - is very startling; and I saw a nervous traveller
hold on to the Tower involuntarily, after glancing down, as if he had
some idea of propping it up. The view within, from the ground
- looking up, as through a slanted tube - is also very curious.
It certainly inclines as much as the most sanguine tourist could desire.
The natural impulse of ninety-nine people out of a hundred, who were
about to recline upon the grass below it, to rest, and contemplate the
adjacent buildings, would probably be, not to take up their position
under the leaning side; it is so very much aslant.
The manifold beauties of the Cathedral and Baptistery need no recapitulation
from me; though in this case, as in a hundred others, I find it difficult
to separate my own delight in recalling them, from your weariness in
having them recalled. There is a picture of St. Agnes, by Andrea
del Sarto, in the former, and there are a variety of rich columns in
the latter, that tempt me strongly.
It is, I hope, no breach of my resolution not to be tempted into elaborate
descriptions, to remember the Campo Santo; where grass-grown graves
are dug in earth brought more than six hundred years ago, from the Holy
Land; and where there are, surrounding them, such cloisters, with such
playing lights and shadows falling through their delicate tracery on
the stone pavement, as surely the dullest memory could never forget.
On the walls of this solemn and lovely place, are ancient frescoes,
very much obliterated and decayed, but very curious. As usually
happens in almost any collection of paintings, of any sort, in Italy,
where there are many heads, there is, in one of them, a striking accidental
likeness of Napoleon. At one time, I used to please my fancy with
the speculation whether these old painters, at their work, had a foreboding
knowledge of the man who would one day arise to wreak such destruction
upon art: whose soldiers would make targets of great pictures, and stable
their horses among triumphs of architecture. But the same Corsican
face is so plentiful in some parts of Italy at this day, that a more
commonplace solution of the coincidence is unavoidable.
If Pisa be the seventh wonder of the world in right of its Tower, it
may claim to be, at least, the second or third in right of its beggars.
They waylay the unhappy visitor at every turn, escort him to every door
he enters at, and lie in wait for him, with strong reinforcements, at
every door by which they know he must come out. The grating of
the portal on its hinges is the signal for a general shout, and the
moment he appears, he is hemmed in, and fallen on, by heaps of rags
and personal distortions. The beggars seem to embody all the trade
and enterprise of Pisa. Nothing else is stirring, but warm air.
Going through the streets, the fronts of the sleepy houses look like
backs. They are all so still and quiet, and unlike houses with
people in them, that the greater part of the city has the appearance
of a city at daybreak, or during a general siesta of the population.
Or it is yet more like those backgrounds of houses in common prints,
or old engravings, where windows and doors are squarely indicated, and
one figure (a beggar of course) is seen walking off by itself into illimitable
perspective.
Not so Leghorn (made illustrious by SMOLLETT’S grave), which is
a thriving, business-like, matter-of-fact place, where idleness is shouldered
out of the way by commerce. The regulations observed there, in
reference to trade and merchants, are very liberal and free; and the
town, of course, benefits by them. Leghorn had a bad name in connection
with stabbers, and with some justice it must be allowed; for, not many
years ago, there was an assassination club there, the members of which
bore no ill-will to anybody in particular, but stabbed people (quite
strangers to them) in the streets at night, for the pleasure and excitement
of the recreation. I think the president of this amiable society
was a shoemaker. He was taken, however, and the club was broken
up. It would, probably, have disappeared in the natural course
of events, before the railroad between Leghorn and Pisa, which is a
good one, and has already begun to astonish Italy with a precedent of
punctuality, order, plain dealing, and improvement - the most dangerous
and heretical astonisher of all. There must have been a slight
sensation, as of earthquake, surely, in the Vatican, when the first
Italian railroad was thrown open.
Returning to Pisa, and hiring a good-tempered Vetturíno, and
his four horses, to take us on to Rome, we travelled through pleasant
Tuscan villages and cheerful scenery all day. The roadside crosses
in this part of Italy are numerous and curious. There is seldom
a figure on the cross, though there is sometimes a face, but they are
remarkable for being garnished with little models in wood, of every
possible object that can be connected with the Saviour’s death.
The cock that crowed when Peter had denied his Master thrice, is usually
perched on the tip-top; and an ornithological phenomenon he generally
is. Under him, is the inscription. Then, hung on to the
cross-beam, are the spear, the reed with the sponge of vinegar and water
at the end, the coat without seam for which the soldiers cast lots,
the dice-box with which they threw for it, the hammer that drove in
the nails, the pincers that pulled them out, the ladder which was set
against the cross, the crown of thorns, the instrument of flagellation,
the lanthorn with which Mary went to the tomb (I suppose), and the sword
with which Peter smote the servant of the high priest, - a perfect toy-shop
of little objects, repeated at every four or five miles, all along the
highway.
On the evening of the second day from Pisa, we reached the beautiful
old city of Siena. There was what they called a Carnival, in progress;
but, as its secret lay in a score or two of melancholy people walking
up and down the principal street in common toy-shop masks, and being
more melancholy, if possible, than the same sort of people in England,
I say no more of it. We went off, betimes next morning, to see
the Cathedral, which is wonderfully picturesque inside and out, especially
the latter - also the market-place, or great Piazza, which is a large
square, with a great broken-nosed fountain in it: some quaint Gothic
houses: and a high square brick tower; outside the top of which
- a curious feature in such views in Italy - hangs an enormous bell.
It is like a bit of Venice, without the water. There are some
curious old Palazzi in the town, which is very ancient; and without
having (for me) the interest of Verona, or Genoa, it is very dreamy
and fantastic, and most interesting.
We went on again, as soon as we had seen these things, and going over
a rather bleak country (there had been nothing but vines until now:
mere walking-sticks at that season of the year), stopped, as usual,
between one and two hours in the middle of the day, to rest the horses;
that being a part of every Vetturíno contract. We then
went on again, through a region gradually becoming bleaker and wilder,
until it became as bare and desolate as any Scottish moors. Soon
after dark, we halted for the night, at the osteria of La Scala: a perfectly
lone house, where the family were sitting round a great fire in the
kitchen, raised on a stone platform three or four feet high, and big
enough for the roasting of an ox. On the upper, and only other
floor of this hotel, there was a great, wild, rambling sála,
with one very little window in a by-corner, and four black doors opening
into four black bedrooms in various directions. To say nothing
of another large black door, opening into another large black sála,
with the staircase coming abruptly through a kind of trap-door in the
floor, and the rafters of the roof looming above: a suspicious little
press skulking in one obscure corner: and all the knives in the house
lying about in various directions. The fireplace was of the purest
Italian architecture, so that it was perfectly impossible to see it
for the smoke. The waitress was like a dramatic brigand’s
wife, and wore the same style of dress upon her head. The dogs
barked like mad; the echoes returned the compliments bestowed upon them;
there was not another house within twelve miles; and things had a dreary,
and rather a cut-throat, appearance.
They were not improved by rumours of robbers having come out, strong
and boldly, within a few nights; and of their having stopped the mail
very near that place. They were known to have waylaid some travellers
not long before, on Mount Vesuvius itself, and were the talk at all
the roadside inns. As they were no business of ours, however (for
we had very little with us to lose), we made ourselves merry on the
subject, and were very soon as comfortable as need be. We had
the usual dinner in this solitary house; and a very good dinner it is,
when you are used to it. There is something with a vegetable or
some rice in it which is a sort of shorthand or arbitrary character
for soup, and which tastes very well, when you have flavoured it with
plenty of grated cheese, lots of salt, and abundance of pepper.
There is the half fowl of which this soup has been made. There
is a stewed pigeon, with the gizzards and livers of himself and other
birds stuck all round him. There is a bit of roast beef, the size
of a small French roll. There are a scrap of Parmesan cheese,
and five little withered apples, all huddled together on a small plate,
and crowding one upon the other, as if each were trying to save itself
from the chance of being eaten. Then there is coffee; and then
there is bed. You don’t mind brick floors; you don’t
mind yawning doors, nor banging windows; you don’t mind your own
horses being stabled under the bed: and so close, that every time a
horse coughs or sneezes, he wakes you. If you are good-humoured
to the people about you, and speak pleasantly, and look cheerful, take
my word for it you may be well entertained in the very worst Italian
Inn, and always in the most obliging manner, and may go from one end
of the country to the other (despite all stories to the contrary) without
any great trial of your patience anywhere. Especially, when you
get such wine in flasks, as the Orvieto, and the Monte Pulciano.
It was a bad morning when we left this place; and we went, for twelve
miles, over a country as barren, as stony, and as wild, as Cornwall
in England, until we came to Radicofani, where there is a ghostly, goblin
inn: once a hunting-seat, belonging to the Dukes of Tuscany. It
is full of such rambling corridors, and gaunt rooms, that all the murdering
and phantom tales that ever were written might have originated in that
one house. There are some horrible old Palazzi in Genoa: one in
particular, not unlike it, outside: but there is a winding, creaking,
wormy, rustling, door-opening, foot-on-staircase-falling character about
this Radicofani Hotel, such as I never saw, anywhere else. The
town, such as it is, hangs on a hill-side above the house, and in front
of it. The inhabitants are all beggars; and as soon as they see
a carriage coming, they swoop down upon it, like so many birds of prey.
When we got on the mountain pass, which lies beyond this place, the
wind (as they had forewarned us at the inn) was so terrific, that we
were obliged to take my other half out of the carriage, lest she should
be blown over, carriage and all, and to hang to it, on the windy side
(as well as we could for laughing), to prevent its going, Heaven knows
where. For mere force of wind, this land-storm might have competed
with an Atlantic gale, and had a reasonable chance of coming off victorious.
The blast came sweeping down great gullies in a range of mountains on
the right: so that we looked with positive awe at a great morass on
the left, and saw that there was not a bush or twig to hold by.
It seemed as if, once blown from our feet, we must be swept out to sea,
or away into space. There was snow, and hail, and rain, and lightning,
and thunder; and there were rolling mists, travelling with incredible
velocity. It was dark, awful, and solitary to the last degree;
there were mountains above mountains, veiled in angry clouds; and there
was such a wrathful, rapid, violent, tumultuous hurry, everywhere, as
rendered the scene unspeakably exciting and grand.
It was a relief to get out of it, notwithstanding; and to cross even
the dismal, dirty Papal Frontier. After passing through two little
towns; in one of which, Acquapendente, there was also a ‘Carnival’
in progress: consisting of one man dressed and masked as a woman, and
one woman dressed and masked as a man, walking ankle-deep, through the
muddy streets, in a very melancholy manner: we came, at dusk, within
sight of the Lake of Bolsena, on whose bank there is a little town of
the same name, much celebrated for malaria. With the exception
of this poor place, there is not a cottage on the banks of the lake,
or near it (for nobody dare sleep there); not a boat upon its waters;
not a stick or stake to break the dismal monotony of seven-and-twenty
watery miles. We were late in getting in, the roads being very
bad from heavy rains; and, after dark, the dulness of the scene was
quite intolerable.
We entered on a very different, and a finer scene of desolation, next
night, at sunset. We had passed through Montefiaschone (famous
for its wine) and Viterbo (for its fountains): and after climbing up
a long hill of eight or ten miles’ extent, came suddenly upon
the margin of a solitary lake: in one part very beautiful, with a luxuriant
wood; in another, very barren, and shut in by bleak volcanic hills.
Where this lake flows, there stood, of old, a city. It was swallowed
up one day; and in its stead, this water rose. There are ancient
traditions (common to many parts of the world) of the ruined city having
been seen below, when the water was clear; but however that may be,
from this spot of earth it vanished. The ground came bubbling
up above it; and the water too; and here they stand, like ghosts on
whom the other world closed suddenly, and who have no means of getting
back again. They seem to be waiting the course of ages, for the
next earthquake in that place; when they will plunge below the ground,
at its first yawning, and be seen no more. The unhappy city below,
is not more lost and dreary, than these fire-charred hills and the stagnant
water, above. The red sun looked strangely on them, as with the
knowledge that they were made for caverns and darkness; and the melancholy
water oozed and sucked the mud, and crept quietly among the marshy grass
and reeds, as if the overthrow of all the ancient towers and housetops,
and the death of all the ancient people born and bred there, were yet
heavy on its conscience.
A short ride from this lake, brought us to Ronciglione; a little town
like a large pig-sty, where we passed the night. Next morning
at seven o’clock, we started for Rome.
As soon as we were out of the pig-sty, we entered on the Campagna Romana;
an undulating flat (as you know), where few people can live; and where,
for miles and miles, there is nothing to relieve the terrible monotony
and gloom. Of all kinds of country that could, by possibility,
lie outside the gates of Rome, this is the aptest and fittest burial-ground
for the Dead City. So sad, so quiet, so sullen; so secret in its
covering up of great masses of ruin, and hiding them; so like the waste
places into which the men possessed with devils used to go and howl,
and rend themselves, in the old days of Jerusalem. We had to traverse
thirty miles of this Campagna; and for two-and-twenty we went on and
on, seeing nothing but now and then a lonely house, or a villainous-looking
shepherd: with matted hair all over his face, and himself wrapped to
the chin in a frowsy brown mantle, tending his sheep. At the end
of that distance, we stopped to refresh the horses, and to get some
lunch, in a common malaria-shaken, despondent little public-house, whose
every inch of wall and beam, inside, was (according to custom) painted
and decorated in a way so miserable that every room looked like the
wrong side of another room, and, with its wretched imitation of drapery,
and lop-sided little daubs of lyres, seemed to have been plundered from
behind the scenes of some travelling circus.
When we were fairly going off again, we began, in a perfect fever, to
strain our eyes for Rome; and when, after another mile or two, the Eternal
City appeared, at length, in the distance; it looked like - I am half
afraid to write the word - like LONDON!!! There it lay, under
a thick cloud, with innumerable towers, and steeples, and roofs of houses,
rising up into the sky, and high above them all, one Dome. I swear,
that keenly as I felt the seeming absurdity of the comparison, it was
so like London, at that distance, that if you could have shown it me,
in a glass, I should have taken it for nothing else.
CHAPTER X - ROME
We entered the Eternal City, at about four o’clock in the afternoon,
on the thirtieth of January, by the Porta del Popolo, and came immediately
- it was a dark, muddy day, and there had been heavy rain - on the skirts
of the Carnival. We did not, then, know that we were only looking
at the fag end of the masks, who were driving slowly round and round
the Piazza until they could find a promising opportunity for falling
into the stream of carriages, and getting, in good time, into the thick
of the festivity; and coming among them so abruptly, all travel-stained
and weary, was not coming very well prepared to enjoy the scene.
We had crossed the Tiber by the Ponte Molle two or three miles before.
It had looked as yellow as it ought to look, and hurrying on between
its worn-away and miry banks, had a promising aspect of desolation and
ruin. The masquerade dresses on the fringe of the Carnival, did
great violence to this promise. There were no great ruins, no
solemn tokens of antiquity, to be seen; - they all lie on the other
side of the city. There seemed to be long streets of commonplace
shops and houses, such as are to be found in any European town; there
were busy people, equipages, ordinary walkers to and fro; a multitude
of chattering strangers. It was no more my Rome: the Rome
of anybody’s fancy, man or boy; degraded and fallen and lying
asleep in the sun among a heap of ruins: than the Place de la Concorde
in Paris is. A cloudy sky, a dull cold rain, and muddy streets,
I was prepared for, but not for this: and I confess to having gone to
bed, that night, in a very indifferent humour, and with a very considerably
quenched enthusiasm.
Immediately on going out next day, we hurried off to St. Peter’s.
It looked immense in the distance, but distinctly and decidedly small,
by comparison, on a near approach. The beauty of the Piazza, on
which it stands, with its clusters of exquisite columns, and its gushing
fountains - so fresh, so broad, and free, and beautiful - nothing can
exaggerate. The first burst of the interior, in all its expansive
majesty and glory: and, most of all, the looking up into the Dome: is
a sensation never to be forgotten. But, there were preparations
for a Festa; the pillars of stately marble were swathed in some impertinent
frippery of red and yellow; the altar, and entrance to the subterranean
chapel: which is before it: in the centre of the church: were like a
goldsmith’s shop, or one of the opening scenes in a very lavish
pantomime. And though I had as high a sense of the beauty of the
building (I hope) as it is possible to entertain, I felt no very strong
emotion. I have been infinitely more affected in many English
cathedrals when the organ has been playing, and in many English country
churches when the congregation have been singing. I had a much
greater sense of mystery and wonder, in the Cathedral of San Mark at
Venice.
When we came out of the church again (we stood nearly an hour staring
up into the dome: and would not have ‘gone over’ the Cathedral
then, for any money), we said to the coachman, ‘Go to the Coliseum.’
In a quarter of an hour or so, he stopped at the gate, and we went in.
It is no fiction, but plain, sober, honest Truth, to say: so suggestive
and distinct is it at this hour: that, for a moment - actually in passing
in - they who will, may have the whole great pile before them, as it
used to be, with thousands of eager faces staring down into the arena,
and such a whirl of strife, and blood, and dust going on there, as no
language can describe. Its solitude, its awful beauty, and its
utter desolation, strike upon the stranger the next moment, like a softened
sorrow; and never in his life, perhaps, will he be so moved and overcome
by any sight, not immediately connected with his own affections and
afflictions.
To see it crumbling there, an inch a year; its walls and arches overgrown
with green; its corridors open to the day; the long grass growing in
its porches; young trees of yesterday, springing up on its ragged parapets,
and bearing fruit: chance produce of the seeds dropped there by the
birds who build their nests within its chinks and crannies; to see its
Pit of Fight filled up with earth, and the peaceful Cross planted in
the centre; to climb into its upper halls, and look down on ruin, ruin,
ruin, all about it; the triumphal arches of Constantine, Septimus Severus,
and Titus; the Roman Forum; the Palace of the Caesars; the temples of
the old religion, fallen down and gone; is to see the ghost of old Rome,
wicked, wonderful old city, haunting the very ground on which its people
trod. It is the most impressive, the most stately, the most solemn,
grand, majestic, mournful sight, conceivable. Never, in its bloodiest
prime, can the sight of the gigantic Coliseum, full and running over
with the lustiest life, have moved one’s heart, as it must move
all who look upon it now, a ruin. GOD be thanked: a ruin!
As it tops the other ruins: standing there, a mountain among graves:
so do its ancient influences outlive all other remnants of the old mythology
and old butchery of Rome, in the nature of the fierce and cruel Roman
people. The Italian face changes as the visitor approaches the
city; its beauty becomes devilish; and there is scarcely one countenance
in a hundred, among the common people in the streets, that would not
be at home and happy in a renovated Coliseum to-morrow.
Here was Rome indeed at last; and such a Rome as no one can imagine
in its full and awful grandeur! We wandered out upon the Appian
Way, and then went on, through miles of ruined tombs and broken walls,
with here and there a desolate and uninhabited house: past the Circus
of Romulus, where the course of the chariots, the stations of the judges,
competitors, and spectators, are yet as plainly to be seen as in old
time: past the tomb of Cecilia Metella: past all inclosure, hedge, or
stake, wall or fence: away upon the open Campagna, where on that side
of Rome, nothing is to be beheld but Ruin. Except where the distant
Apennines bound the view upon the left, the whole wide prospect is one
field of ruin. Broken aqueducts, left in the most picturesque
and beautiful clusters of arches; broken temples; broken tombs.
A desert of decay, sombre and desolate beyond all expression; and with
a history in every stone that strews the ground.
On Sunday, the Pope assisted in the performance of High Mass at St.
Peter’s. The effect of the Cathedral on my mind, on that
second visit, was exactly what it was at first, and what it remains
after many visits. It is not religiously impressive or affecting.
It is an immense edifice, with no one point for the mind to rest upon;
and it tires itself with wandering round and round. The very purpose
of the place, is not expressed in anything you see there, unless you
examine its details - and all examination of details is incompatible
with the place itself. It might be a Pantheon, or a Senate House,
or a great architectural trophy, having no other object than an architectural
triumph. There is a black statue of St. Peter, to be sure, under
a red canopy; which is larger than life and which is constantly having
its great toe kissed by good Catholics. You cannot help seeing
that: it is so very prominent and popular. But it does not heighten
the effect of the temple, as a work of art; and it is not expressive
- to me at least - of its high purpose.
A large space behind the altar, was fitted up with boxes, shaped like
those at the Italian Opera in England, but in their decoration much
more gaudy. In the centre of the kind of theatre thus railed off,
was a canopied dais with the Pope’s chair upon it. The pavement
was covered with a carpet of the brightest green; and what with this
green, and the intolerable reds and crimsons, and gold borders of the
hangings, the whole concern looked like a stupendous Bonbon. On
either side of the altar, was a large box for lady strangers.
These were filled with ladies in black dresses and black veils.
The gentlemen of the Pope’s guard, in red coats, leather breeches,
and jack-boots, guarded all this reserved space, with drawn swords that
were very flashy in every sense; and from the altar all down the nave,
a broad lane was kept clear by the Pope’s Swiss guard, who wear
a quaint striped surcoat, and striped tight legs, and carry halberds
like those which are usually shouldered by those theatrical supernumeraries,
who never can get off the stage fast enough, and who may be generally
observed to linger in the enemy’s camp after the open country,
held by the opposite forces, has been split up the middle by a convulsion
of Nature.
I got upon the border of the green carpet, in company with a great many
other gentlemen, attired in black (no other passport is necessary),
and stood there at my ease, during the performance of Mass. The
singers were in a crib of wirework (like a large meat-safe or bird-cage)
in one corner; and sang most atrociously. All about the green
carpet, there was a slowly moving crowd of people: talking to each other:
staring at the Pope through eye-glasses; defrauding one another, in
moments of partial curiosity, out of precarious seats on the bases of
pillars: and grinning hideously at the ladies. Dotted here and
there, were little knots of friars (Frances-cáni, or Cappuccíni,
in their coarse brown dresses and peaked hoods) making a strange contrast
to the gaudy ecclesiastics of higher degree, and having their humility
gratified to the utmost, by being shouldered about, and elbowed right
and left, on all sides. Some of these had muddy sandals and umbrellas,
and stained garments: having trudged in from the country. The
faces of the greater part were as coarse and heavy as their dress; their
dogged, stupid, monotonous stare at all the glory and splendour, having
something in it, half miserable, and half ridiculous.
Upon the green carpet itself, and gathered round the altar, was a perfect
army of cardinals and priests, in red, gold, purple, violet, white,
and fine linen. Stragglers from these, went to and fro among the
crowd, conversing two and two, or giving and receiving introductions,
and exchanging salutations; other functionaries in black gowns, and
other functionaries in court-dresses, were similarly engaged.
In the midst of all these, and stealthy Jesuits creeping in and out,
and the extreme restlessness of the Youth of England, who were perpetually
wandering about, some few steady persons in black cassocks, who had
knelt down with their faces to the wall, and were poring over their
missals, became, unintentionally, a sort of humane man-traps, and with
their own devout legs, tripped up other people’s by the dozen.
There was a great pile of candles lying down on the floor near me, which
a very old man in a rusty black gown with an open-work tippet, like
a summer ornament for a fireplace in tissue-paper, made himself very
busy in dispensing to all the ecclesiastics: one a-piece. They
loitered about with these for some time, under their arms like walking-sticks,
or in their hands like truncheons. At a certain period of the
ceremony, however, each carried his candle up to the Pope, laid it across
his two knees to be blessed, took it back again, and filed off.
This was done in a very attenuated procession, as you may suppose, and
occupied a long time. Not because it takes long to bless a candle
through and through, but because there were so many candles to be blessed.
At last they were all blessed: and then they were all lighted; and then
the Pope was taken up, chair and all, and carried round the church.
I must say, that I never saw anything, out of November, so like the
popular English commemoration of the fifth of that month. A bundle
of matches and a lantern, would have made it perfect. Nor did
the Pope, himself, at all mar the resemblance, though he has a pleasant
and venerable face; for, as this part of the ceremony makes him giddy
and sick, he shuts his eyes when it is performed: and having his eyes
shut and a great mitre on his head, and his head itself wagging to and
fro as they shook him in carrying, he looked as if his mask were going
to tumble off. The two immense fans which are always borne, one
on either side of him, accompanied him, of course, on this occasion.
As they carried him along, he blessed the people with the mystic sign;
and as he passed them, they kneeled down. When he had made the
round of the church, he was brought back again, and if I am not mistaken,
this performance was repeated, in the whole, three times. There
was, certainly nothing solemn or effective in it; and certainly very
much that was droll and tawdry. But this remark applies to the
whole ceremony, except the raising of the Host, when every man in the
guard dropped on one knee instantly, and dashed his naked sword on the
ground; which had a fine effect.
The next time I saw the cathedral, was some two or three weeks afterwards,
when I climbed up into the ball; and then, the hangings being taken
down, and the carpet taken up, but all the framework left, the remnants
of these decorations looked like an exploded cracker.
The Friday and Saturday having been solemn Festa days, and Sunday being
always a dies non in carnival proceedings, we had looked forward,
with some impatience and curiosity, to the beginning of the new week:
Monday and Tuesday being the two last and best days of the Carnival.
On the Monday afternoon at one or two o’clock, there began to
be a great rattling of carriages into the court-yard of the hotel; a
hurrying to and fro of all the servants in it; and, now and then, a
swift shooting across some doorway or balcony, of a straggling stranger
in a fancy dress: not yet sufficiently well used to the same, to wear
it with confidence, and defy public opinion. All the carriages
were open, and had the linings carefully covered with white cotton or
calico, to prevent their proper decorations from being spoiled by the
incessant pelting of sugar-plums; and people were packing and cramming
into every vehicle as it waited for its occupants, enormous sacks and
baskets full of these confétti, together with such heaps of flowers,
tied up in little nosegays, that some carriages were not only brimful
of flowers, but literally running over: scattering, at every shake and
jerk of the springs, some of their abundance on the ground. Not
to be behindhand in these essential particulars, we caused two very
respectable sacks of sugar-plums (each about three feet high) and a
large clothes-basket full of flowers to be conveyed into our hired barouche,
with all speed. And from our place of observation, in one of the
upper balconies of the hotel, we contemplated these arrangements with
the liveliest satisfaction. The carriages now beginning to take
up their company, and move away, we got into ours, and drove off too,
armed with little wire masks for our faces; the sugar-plums, like Falstaff’s
adulterated sack, having lime in their composition.
The Corso is a street a mile long; a street of shops, and palaces, and
private houses, sometimes opening into a broad piazza. There are
verandahs and balconies, of all shapes and sizes, to almost every house
- not on one story alone, but often to one room or another on every
story - put there in general with so little order or regularity, that
if, year after year, and season after season, it had rained balconies,
hailed balconies, snowed balconies, blown balconies, they could scarcely
have come into existence in a more disorderly manner.
This is the great fountain-head and focus of the Carnival. But
all the streets in which the Carnival is held, being vigilantly kept
by dragoons, it is necessary for carriages, in the first instance, to
pass, in line, down another thoroughfare, and so come into the Corso
at the end remote from the Piázza del Popolo; which is one of
its terminations. Accordingly, we fell into the string of coaches,
and, for some time, jogged on quietly enough; now crawling on at a very
slow walk; now trotting half-a-dozen yards; now backing fifty; and now
stopping altogether: as the pressure in front obliged us. If any
impetuous carriage dashed out of the rank and clattered forward, with
the wild idea of getting on faster, it was suddenly met, or overtaken,
by a trooper on horseback, who, deaf as his own drawn sword to all remonstrances,
immediately escorted it back to the very end of the row, and made it
a dim speck in the remotest perspective. Occasionally, we interchanged
a volley of confétti with the carriage next in front, or the
carriage next behind; but as yet, this capturing of stray and errant
coaches by the military, was the chief amusement.
Presently, we came into a narrow street, where, besides one line of
carriages going, there was another line of carriages returning.
Here the sugar-plums and the nosegays began to fly about, pretty smartly;
and I was fortunate enough to observe one gentleman attired as a Greek
warrior, catch a light-whiskered brigand on the nose (he was in the
very act of tossing up a bouquet to a young lady in a first-floor window)
with a precision that was much applauded by the bystanders. As
this victorious Greek was exchanging a facetious remark with a stout
gentleman in a doorway - one-half black and one-half white, as if he
had been peeled up the middle - who had offered him his congratulations
on this achievement, he received an orange from a housetop, full on
his left ear, and was much surprised, not to say discomfited.
Especially, as he was standing up at the time; and in consequence of
the carriage moving on suddenly, at the same moment, staggered ignominiously,
and buried himself among his flowers.
Some quarter of an hour of this sort of progress, brought us to the
Corso; and anything so gay, so bright, and lively as the whole scene
there, it would be difficult to imagine. From all the innumerable
balconies: from the remotest and highest, no less than from the lowest
and nearest: hangings of bright red, bright green, bright blue, white
and gold, were fluttering in the brilliant sunlight. From windows,
and from parapets, and tops of houses, streamers of the richest colours,
and draperies of the gaudiest and most sparkling hues, were floating
out upon the street. The buildings seemed to have been literally
turned inside out, and to have all their gaiety towards the highway.
Shop-fronts were taken down, and the windows filled with company, like
boxes at a shining theatre; doors were carried off their hinges, and
long tapestried groves, hung with garlands of flowers and evergreens,
displayed within; builders’ scaffoldings were gorgeous temples,
radiant in silver, gold, and crimson; and in every nook and corner,
from the pavement to the chimney-tops, where women’s eyes could
glisten, there they danced, and laughed, and sparkled, like the light
in water. Every sort of bewitching madness of dress was there.
Little preposterous scarlet jackets; quaint old stomachers, more wicked
than the smartest bodices; Polish pelisses, strained and tight as ripe
gooseberries; tiny Greek caps, all awry, and clinging to the dark hair,
Heaven knows how; every wild, quaint, bold, shy, pettish, madcap fancy
had its illustration in a dress; and every fancy was as dead forgotten
by its owner, in the tumult of merriment, as if the three old aqueducts
that still remain entire had brought Lethe into Rome, upon their sturdy
arches, that morning.
The carriages were now three abreast; in broader places four; often
stationary for a long time together, always one close mass of variegated
brightness; showing, the whole street-full, through the storm of flowers,
like flowers of a larger growth themselves. In some, the horses
were richly caparisoned in magnificent trappings; in others they were
decked from head to tail, with flowing ribbons. Some were driven
by coachmen with enormous double faces: one face leering at the horses:
the other cocking its extraordinary eyes into the carriage: and both
rattling again, under the hail of sugar-plums. Other drivers were
attired as women, wearing long ringlets and no bonnets, and looking
more ridiculous in any real difficulty with the horses (of which, in
such a concourse, there were a great many) than tongue can tell, or
pen describe. Instead of sitting in the carriages, upon
the seats, the handsome Roman women, to see and to be seen the better,
sit in the heads of the barouches, at this time of general licence,
with their feet upon the cushions - and oh, the flowing skirts and dainty
waists, the blessed shapes and laughing faces, the free, good-humoured,
gallant figures that they make! There were great vans, too, full of
handsome girls - thirty, or more together, perhaps - and the broadsides
that were poured into, and poured out of, these fairy fire-shops, splashed
the air with flowers and bon-bons for ten minutes at a time. Carriages,
delayed long in one place, would begin a deliberate engagement with
other carriages, or with people at the lower windows; and the spectators
at some upper balcony or window, joining in the fray, and attacking
both parties, would empty down great bags of confétti, that descended
like a cloud, and in an instant made them white as millers. Still,
carriages on carriages, dresses on dresses, colours on colours, crowds
upon crowds, without end. Men and boys clinging to the wheels
of coaches, and holding on behind, and following in their wake, and
diving in among the horses’ feet to pick up scattered flowers
to sell again; maskers on foot (the drollest generally) in fantastic
exaggerations of court-dresses, surveying the throng through enormous
eye-glasses, and always transported with an ecstasy of love, on the
discovery of any particularly old lady at a window; long strings of
Policinelli, laying about them with blown bladders at the ends of sticks;
a waggon-full of madmen, screaming and tearing to the life; a coach-full
of grave mamelukes, with their horse-tail standard set up in the midst;
a party of gipsy-women engaged in terrific conflict with a shipful of
sailors; a man-monkey on a pole, surrounded by strange animals with
pigs’ faces, and lions’ tails, carried under their arms,
or worn gracefully over their shoulders; carriages on carriages, dresses
on dresses, colours on colours, crowds upon crowds, without end.
Not many actual characters sustained, or represented, perhaps, considering
the number dressed, but the main pleasure of the scene consisting in
its perfect good temper; in its bright, and infinite, and flashing variety;
and in its entire abandonment to the mad humour of the time - an abandonment
so perfect, so contagious, so irresistible, that the steadiest foreigner
fights up to his middle in flowers and sugar-plums, like the wildest
Roman of them all, and thinks of nothing else till half-past four o’clock,
when he is suddenly reminded (to his great regret) that this is not
the whole business of his existence, by hearing the trumpets sound,
and seeing the dragoons begin to clear the street.
How it ever is cleared for the race that takes place at five,
or how the horses ever go through the race, without going over the people,
is more than I can say. But the carriages get out into the by-streets,
or up into the Piázza del Popolo, and some people sit in temporary
galleries in the latter place, and tens of thousands line the Corso
on both sides, when the horses are brought out into the Piázza
- to the foot of that same column which, for centuries, looked down
upon the games and chariot-races in the Circus Maximus.
At a given signal they are started off. Down the live lane, the
whole length of the Corso, they fly like the wind: riderless, as all
the world knows: with shining ornaments upon their backs, and twisted
in their plaited manes: and with heavy little balls stuck full of spikes,
dangling at their sides, to goad them on. The jingling of these
trappings, and the rattling of their hoofs upon the hard stones; the
dash and fury of their speed along the echoing street; nay, the very
cannon that are fired - these noises are nothing to the roaring of the
multitude: their shouts: the clapping of their hands. But it is
soon over - almost instantaneously. More cannon shake the town.
The horses have plunged into the carpets put across the street to stop
them; the goal is reached; the prizes are won (they are given, in part,
by the poor Jews, as a compromise for not running foot-races themselves);
and there is an end to that day’s sport.
But if the scene be bright, and gay, and crowded, on the last day but
one, it attains, on the concluding day, to such a height of glittering
colour, swarming life, and frolicsome uproar, that the bare recollection
of it makes me giddy at this moment. The same diversions, greatly
heightened and intensified in the ardour with which they are pursued,
go on until the same hour. The race is repeated; the cannon are
fired; the shouting and clapping of hands are renewed; the cannon are
fired again; the race is over; and the prizes are won. But the
carriages: ankle-deep with sugar-plums within, and so be-flowered and
dusty without, as to be hardly recognisable for the same vehicles that
they were, three hours ago: instead of scampering off in all directions,
throng into the Corso, where they are soon wedged together in a scarcely
moving mass. For the diversion of the Moccoletti, the last gay
madness of the Carnival, is now at hand; and sellers of little tapers
like what are called Christmas candles in England, are shouting lustily
on every side, ‘Moccoli, Moccoli! Ecco Moccoli!’ -
a new item in the tumult; quite abolishing that other item of ‘
Ecco Fióri! Ecco Fior-r-r!’ which has been making
itself audible over all the rest, at intervals, the whole day through.
As the bright hangings and dresses are all fading into one dull, heavy,
uniform colour in the decline of the day, lights begin flashing, here
and there: in the windows, on the housetops, in the balconies, in the
carriages, in the hands of the foot-passengers: little by little: gradually,
gradually: more and more: until the whole long street is one great glare
and blaze of fire. Then, everybody present has but one engrossing
object; that is, to extinguish other people’s candles, and to
keep his own alight; and everybody: man, woman, or child, gentleman
or lady, prince or peasant, native or foreigner: yells and screams,
and roars incessantly, as a taunt to the subdued, ‘Senza Moccolo,
Senza Moccolo!’ (Without a light! Without a light!)
until nothing is heard but a gigantic chorus of those two words, mingled
with peals of laughter.
The spectacle, at this time, is one of the most extraordinary that can
be imagined. Carriages coming slowly by, with everybody standing
on the seats or on the box, holding up their lights at arms’ length,
for greater safety; some in paper shades; some with a bunch of undefended
little tapers, kindled altogether; some with blazing torches; some with
feeble little candles; men on foot, creeping along, among the wheels,
watching their opportunity, to make a spring at some particular light,
and dash it out; other people climbing up into carriages, to get hold
of them by main force; others, chasing some unlucky wanderer, round
and round his own coach, to blow out the light he has begged or stolen
somewhere, before he can ascend to his own company, and enable them
to light their extinguished tapers; others, with their hats off, at
a carriage-door, humbly beseeching some kind-hearted lady to oblige
them with a light for a cigar, and when she is in the fulness of doubt
whether to comply or no, blowing out the candle she is guarding so tenderly
with her little hand; other people at the windows, fishing for candles
with lines and hooks, or letting down long willow-wands with handkerchiefs
at the end, and flapping them out, dexterously, when the bearer is at
the height of his triumph, others, biding their time in corners, with
immense extinguishers like halberds, and suddenly coming down upon glorious
torches; others, gathered round one coach, and sticking to it; others,
raining oranges and nosegays at an obdurate little lantern, or regularly
storming a pyramid of men, holding up one man among them, who carries
one feeble little wick above his head, with which he defies them all!
Senza Moccolo! Senza Moccolo! Beautiful women, standing
up in coaches, pointing in derision at extinguished lights, and clapping
their hands, as they pass on, crying, ‘Senza Moccolo! Senza
Moccolo!’; low balconies full of lovely faces and gay dresses,
struggling with assailants in the streets; some repressing them as they
climb up, some bending down, some leaning over, some shrinking back
- delicate arms and bosoms - graceful figures - glowing lights, fluttering
dresses, Senza Moccolo, Senza Moccoli, Senza Moc-co-lo-o-o-o! - when
in the wildest enthusiasm of the cry, and fullest ecstasy of the sport,
the Ave Maria rings from the church steeples, and the Carnival is over
in an instant - put out like a taper, with a breath!
There was a masquerade at the theatre at night, as dull and senseless
as a London one, and only remarkable for the summary way in which the
house was cleared at eleven o’clock: which was done by a line
of soldiers forming along the wall, at the back of the stage, and sweeping
the whole company out before them, like a broad broom. The game
of the Moccoletti (the word, in the singular, Moccoletto, is the diminutive
of Moccolo, and means a little lamp or candlesnuff) is supposed by some
to be a ceremony of burlesque mourning for the death of the Carnival:
candles being indispensable to Catholic grief. But whether it
be so, or be a remnant of the ancient Saturnalia, or an incorporation
of both, or have its origin in anything else, I shall always remember
it, and the frolic, as a brilliant and most captivating sight: no less
remarkable for the unbroken good-humour of all concerned, down to the
very lowest (and among those who scaled the carriages, were many of
the commonest men and boys), than for its innocent vivacity. For,
odd as it may seem to say so, of a sport so full of thoughtlessness
and personal display, it is as free from any taint of immodesty as any
general mingling of the two sexes can possibly be; and there seems to
prevail, during its progress, a feeling of general, almost childish,
simplicity and confidence, which one thinks of with a pang, when the
Ave Maria has rung it away, for a whole year.
Availing ourselves of a part of the quiet interval between the termination
of the Carnival and the beginning of the Holy Week: when everybody had
run away from the one, and few people had yet begun to run back again
for the other: we went conscientiously to work, to see Rome. And,
by dint of going out early every morning, and coming back late every
evening, and labouring hard all day, I believe we made acquaintance
with every post and pillar in the city, and the country round; and,
in particular, explored so many churches, that I abandoned that part
of the enterprise at last, before it was half finished, lest I should
never, of my own accord, go to church again, as long as I lived.
But, I managed, almost every day, at one time or other, to get back
to the Coliseum, and out upon the open Campagna, beyond the Tomb of
Cecilia Metella.
We often encountered, in these expeditions, a company of English Tourists,
with whom I had an ardent, but ungratified longing, to establish a speaking
acquaintance. They were one Mr. Davis, and a small circle of friends.
It was impossible not to know Mrs. Davis’s name, from her being
always in great request among her party, and her party being everywhere.
During the Holy Week, they were in every part of every scene of every
ceremony. For a fortnight or three weeks before it, they were
in every tomb, and every church, and every ruin, and every Picture Gallery;
and I hardly ever observed Mrs. Davis to be silent for a moment.
Deep underground, high up in St. Peter’s, out on the Campagna,
and stifling in the Jews’ quarter, Mrs. Davis turned up, all the
same. I don’t think she ever saw anything, or ever looked
at anything; and she had always lost something out of a straw hand-basket,
and was trying to find it, with all her might and main, among an immense
quantity of English halfpence, which lay, like sands upon the sea-shore,
at the bottom of it. There was a professional Cicerone always
attached to the party (which had been brought over from London, fifteen
or twenty strong, by contract), and if he so much as looked at Mrs.
Davis, she invariably cut him short by saying, ‘There, God bless
the man, don’t worrit me! I don’t understand a word
you say, and shouldn’t if you was to talk till you was black in
the face!’ Mr. Davis always had a snuff-coloured great-coat
on, and carried a great green umbrella in his hand, and had a slow curiosity
constantly devouring him, which prompted him to do extraordinary things,
such as taking the covers off urns in tombs, and looking in at the ashes
as if they were pickles - and tracing out inscriptions with the ferrule
of his umbrella, and saying, with intense thoughtfulness, ‘Here’s
a B you see, and there’s a R, and this is the way we goes on in;
is it!’ His antiquarian habits occasioned his being frequently
in the rear of the rest; and one of the agonies of Mrs. Davis, and the
party in general, was an ever-present fear that Davis would be lost.
This caused them to scream for him, in the strangest places, and at
the most improper seasons. And when he came, slowly emerging out
of some sepulchre or other, like a peaceful Ghoule, saying ‘Here
I am!’ Mrs. Davis invariably replied, ‘You’ll be buried
alive in a foreign country, Davis, and it’s no use trying to prevent
you!’
Mr. and Mrs. Davis, and their party, had, probably, been brought from
London in about nine or ten days. Eighteen hundred years ago,
the Roman legions under Claudius, protested against being led into Mr.
and Mrs. Davis’s country, urging that it lay beyond the limits
of the world.
Among what may be called the Cubs or minor Lions of Rome, there was
one that amused me mightily. It is always to be found there; and
its den is on the great flight of steps that lead from the Piazza di
Spágna, to the church of Trínita del Monte. In plainer
words, these steps are the great place of resort for the artists’
‘Models,’ and there they are constantly waiting to be hired.
The first time I went up there, I could not conceive why the faces seemed
familiar to me; why they appeared to have beset me, for years, in every
possible variety of action and costume; and how it came to pass that
they started up before me, in Rome, in the broad day, like so many saddled
and bridled nightmares. I soon found that we had made acquaintance,
and improved it, for several years, on the walls of various Exhibition
Galleries. There is one old gentleman, with long white hair and
an immense beard, who, to my knowledge, has gone half through the catalogue
of the Royal Academy. This is the venerable, or patriarchal model.
He carries a long staff; and every knot and twist in that staff I have
seen, faithfully delineated, innumerable times. There is another
man in a blue cloak, who always pretends to be asleep in the sun (when
there is any), and who, I need not say, is always very wide awake, and
very attentive to the disposition of his legs. This is the dolce
far’ niente model. There is another man in a brown cloak,
who leans against a wall, with his arms folded in his mantle, and looks
out of the corners of his eyes: which are just visible beneath his broad
slouched hat. This is the assassin model. There is another
man, who constantly looks over his own shoulder, and is always going
away, but never does. This is the haughty, or scornful model.
As to Domestic Happiness, and Holy Families, they should come very cheap,
for there are lumps of them, all up the steps; and the cream of the
thing is, that they are all the falsest vagabonds in the world, especially
made up for the purpose, and having no counterparts in Rome or any other
part of the habitable globe.
My recent mention of the Carnival, reminds me of its being said to be
a mock mourning (in the ceremony with which it closes), for the gaieties
and merry-makings before Lent; and this again reminds me of the real
funerals and mourning processions of Rome, which, like those in most
other parts of Italy, are rendered chiefly remarkable to a Foreigner,
by the indifference with which the mere clay is universally regarded,
after life has left it. And this is not from the survivors having
had time to dissociate the memory of the dead from their well-remembered
appearance and form on earth; for the interment follows too speedily
after death, for that: almost always taking place within four-and-twenty
hours, and, sometimes, within twelve.
At Rome, there is the same arrangement of Pits in a great, bleak, open,
dreary space, that I have already described as existing in Genoa.
When I visited it, at noonday, I saw a solitary coffin of plain deal:
uncovered by any shroud or pall, and so slightly made, that the hoof
of any wandering mule would have crushed it in: carelessly tumbled down,
all on one side, on the door of one of the pits - and there left, by
itself, in the wind and sunshine. ‘How does it come to be
left here?’ I asked the man who showed me the place. ‘It
was brought here half an hour ago, Signore,’ he said. I
remembered to have met the procession, on its return: straggling away
at a good round pace. ‘When will it be put in the pit?’
I asked him. ‘When the cart comes, and it is opened to-night,’
he said. ‘How much does it cost to be brought here in this
way, instead of coming in the cart?’ I asked him. ‘Ten
scudi,’ he said (about two pounds, two-and-sixpence, English).
‘The other bodies, for whom nothing is paid, are taken to the
church of the Santa Maria della Consolázione,’ he continued,
‘and brought here altogether, in the cart at night.’
I stood, a moment, looking at the coffin, which had two initial letters
scrawled upon the top; and turned away, with an expression in my face,
I suppose, of not much liking its exposure in that manner: for he said,
shrugging his shoulders with great vivacity, and giving a pleasant smile,
‘But he’s dead, Signore, he’s dead. Why not?’
Among the innumerable churches, there is one I must select for separate
mention. It is the church of the Ara Coeli, supposed to be built
on the site of the old Temple of Jupiter Feretrius; and approached,
on one side, by a long steep flight of steps, which seem incomplete
without some group of bearded soothsayers on the top. It is remarkable
for the possession of a miraculous Bambíno, or wooden doll, representing
the Infant Saviour; and I first saw this miraculous Bambíno,
in legal phrase, in manner following, that is to say:
We had strolled into the church one afternoon, and were looking down
its long vista of gloomy pillars (for all these ancient churches built
upon the ruins of old temples, are dark and sad), when the Brave came
running in, with a grin upon his face that stretched it from ear to
ear, and implored us to follow him, without a moment’s delay,
as they were going to show the Bambíno to a select party.
We accordingly hurried off to a sort of chapel, or sacristy, hard by
the chief altar, but not in the church itself, where the select party,
consisting of two or three Catholic gentlemen and ladies (not Italians),
were already assembled: and where one hollow-cheeked young monk was
lighting up divers candles, while another was putting on some clerical
robes over his coarse brown habit. The candles were on a kind
of altar, and above it were two delectable figures, such as you would
see at any English fair, representing the Holy Virgin, and Saint Joseph,
as I suppose, bending in devotion over a wooden box, or coffer; which
was shut.
The hollow-cheeked monk, number One, having finished lighting the candles,
went down on his knees, in a corner, before this set-piece; and the
monk number Two, having put on a pair of highly ornamented and gold-bespattered
gloves, lifted down the coffer, with great reverence, and set it on
the altar. Then, with many genuflexions, and muttering certain
prayers, he opened it, and let down the front, and took off sundry coverings
of satin and lace from the inside. The ladies had been on their
knees from the commencement; and the gentlemen now dropped down devoutly,
as he exposed to view a little wooden doll, in face very like General
Tom Thumb, the American Dwarf: gorgeously dressed in satin and gold
lace, and actually blazing with rich jewels. There was scarcely
a spot upon its little breast, or neck, or stomach, but was sparkling
with the costly offerings of the Faithful. Presently, he lifted
it out of the box, and carrying it round among the kneelers, set its
face against the forehead of every one, and tendered its clumsy foot
to them to kiss - a ceremony which they all performed down to a dirty
little ragamuffin of a boy who had walked in from the street.
When this was done, he laid it in the box again: and the company, rising,
drew near, and commended the jewels in whispers. In good time,
he replaced the coverings, shut up the box, put it back in its place,
locked up the whole concern (Holy Family and all) behind a pair of folding-doors;
took off his priestly vestments; and received the customary ‘small
charge,’ while his companion, by means of an extinguisher fastened
to the end of a long stick, put out the lights, one after another.
The candles being all extinguished, and the money all collected, they
retired, and so did the spectators.
I met this same Bambíno, in the street a short time afterwards,
going, in great state, to the house of some sick person. It is
taken to all parts of Rome for this purpose, constantly; but, I understand
that it is not always as successful as could be wished; for, making
its appearance at the bedside of weak and nervous people in extremity,
accompanied by a numerous escort, it not unfrequently frightens them
to death. It is most popular in cases of child-birth, where it
has done such wonders, that if a lady be longer than usual in getting
through her difficulties, a messenger is despatched, with all speed,
to solicit the immediate attendance of the Bambíno. It
is a very valuable property, and much confided in - especially by the
religious body to whom it belongs.
I am happy to know that it is not considered immaculate, by some who
are good Catholics, and who are behind the scenes, from what was told
me by the near relation of a Priest, himself a Catholic, and a gentleman
of learning and intelligence. This Priest made my informant promise
that he would, on no account, allow the Bambíno to be borne into
the bedroom of a sick lady, in whom they were both interested.
‘For,’ said he, ‘if they (the monks) trouble her with
it, and intrude themselves into her room, it will certainly kill her.’
My informant accordingly looked out of the window when it came; and,
with many thanks, declined to open the door. He endeavoured, in
another case of which he had no other knowledge than such as he gained
as a passer-by at the moment, to prevent its being carried into a small
unwholesome chamber, where a poor girl was dying. But, he strove
against it unsuccessfully, and she expired while the crowd were pressing
round her bed.
Among the people who drop into St. Peter’s at their leisure, to
kneel on the pavement, and say a quiet prayer, there are certain schools
and seminaries, priestly and otherwise, that come in, twenty or thirty
strong. These boys always kneel down in single file, one behind
the other, with a tall grim master in a black gown, bringing up the
rear: like a pack of cards arranged to be tumbled down at a touch, with
a disproportionately large Knave of clubs at the end. When they
have had a minute or so at the chief altar, they scramble up, and filing
off to the chapel of the Madonna, or the sacrament, flop down again
in the same order; so that if anybody did stumble against the master,
a general and sudden overthrow of the whole line must inevitably ensue.
The scene in all the churches is the strangest possible. The same
monotonous, heartless, drowsy chaunting, always going on; the same dark
building, darker from the brightness of the street without; the same
lamps dimly burning; the selfsame people kneeling here and there; turned
towards you, from one altar or other, the same priest’s back,
with the same large cross embroidered on it; however different in size,
in shape, in wealth, in architecture, this church is from that, it is
the same thing still. There are the same dirty beggars stopping
in their muttered prayers to beg; the same miserable cripples exhibiting
their deformity at the doors; the same blind men, rattling little pots
like kitchen pepper-castors: their depositories for alms; the same preposterous
crowns of silver stuck upon the painted heads of single saints and Virgins
in crowded pictures, so that a little figure on a mountain has a head-dress
bigger than the temple in the foreground, or adjacent miles of landscape;
the same favourite shrine or figure, smothered with little silver hearts
and crosses, and the like: the staple trade and show of all the jewellers;
the same odd mixture of respect and indecorum, faith and phlegm: kneeling
on the stones, and spitting on them, loudly; getting up from prayers
to beg a little, or to pursue some other worldly matter: and then kneeling
down again, to resume the contrite supplication at the point where it
was interrupted. In one church, a kneeling lady got up from her
prayer, for a moment, to offer us her card, as a teacher of Music; and
in another, a sedate gentleman with a very thick walking-staff, arose
from his devotions to belabour his dog, who was growling at another
dog: and whose yelps and howls resounded through the church, as his
master quietly relapsed into his former train of meditation - keeping
his eye upon the dog, at the same time, nevertheless.
Above all, there is always a receptacle for the contributions of the
Faithful, in some form or other. Sometimes, it is a money-box,
set up between the worshipper, and the wooden life-size figure of the
Redeemer; sometimes, it is a little chest for the maintenance of the
Virgin; sometimes, an appeal on behalf of a popular Bambíno;
sometimes, a bag at the end of a long stick, thrust among the people
here and there, and vigilantly jingled by an active Sacristan; but there
it always is, and, very often, in many shapes in the same church, and
doing pretty well in all. Nor, is it wanting in the open air -
the streets and roads - for, often as you are walking along, thinking
about anything rather than a tin canister, that object pounces out upon
you from a little house by the wayside; and on its top is painted, ‘For
the Souls in Purgatory;’ an appeal which the bearer repeats a
great many times, as he rattles it before you, much as Punch rattles
the cracked bell which his sanguine disposition makes an organ of.
And this reminds me that some Roman altars of peculiar sanctity, bear
the inscription, ‘Every Mass performed at this altar frees a soul
from Purgatory.’ I have never been able to find out the
charge for one of these services, but they should needs be expensive.
There are several Crosses in Rome too, the kissing of which, confers
indulgences for varying terms. That in the centre of the Coliseum,
is worth a hundred days; and people may be seen kissing it from morning
to night. It is curious that some of these crosses seem to acquire
an arbitrary popularity: this very one among them. In another
part of the Coliseum there is a cross upon a marble slab, with the inscription,
‘Who kisses this cross shall be entitled to Two hundred and forty
days’ indulgence.’ But I saw no one person kiss it,
though, day after day, I sat in the arena, and saw scores upon scores
of peasants pass it, on their way to kiss the other.
To single out details from the great dream of Roman Churches, would
be the wildest occupation in the world. But St. Stefano Rotondo,
a damp, mildewed vault of an old church in the outskirts of Rome, will
always struggle uppermost in my mind, by reason of the hideous paintings
with which its walls are covered. These represent the martyrdoms
of saints and early Christians; and such a panorama of horror and butchery
no man could imagine in his sleep, though he were to eat a whole pig
raw, for supper. Grey-bearded men being boiled, fried, grilled,
crimped, singed, eaten by wild beasts, worried by dogs, buried alive,
torn asunder by horses, chopped up small with hatchets: women having
their breasts torn with iron pinchers, their tongues cut out, their
ears screwed off, their jaws broken, their bodies stretched upon the
rack, or skinned upon the stake, or crackled up and melted in the fire:
these are among the mildest subjects. So insisted on, and laboured
at, besides, that every sufferer gives you the same occasion for wonder
as poor old Duncan awoke, in Lady Macbeth, when she marvelled at his
having so much blood in him.
There is an upper chamber in the Mamertine prisons, over what is said
to have been - and very possibly may have been - the dungeon of St.
Peter. This chamber is now fitted up as an oratory, dedicated
to that saint; and it lives, as a distinct and separate place, in my
recollection, too. It is very small and low-roofed; and the dread
and gloom of the ponderous, obdurate old prison are on it, as if they
had come up in a dark mist through the floor. Hanging on the walls,
among the clustered votive offerings, are objects, at once strangely
in keeping, and strangely at variance, with the place - rusty daggers,
knives, pistols, clubs, divers instruments of violence and murder, brought
here, fresh from use, and hung up to propitiate offended Heaven: as
if the blood upon them would drain off in consecrated air, and have
no voice to cry with. It is all so silent and so close, and tomb-like;
and the dungeons below are so black and stealthy, and stagnant, and
naked; that this little dark spot becomes a dream within a dream: and
in the vision of great churches which come rolling past me like a sea,
it is a small wave by itself, that melts into no other wave, and does
not flow on with the rest.
It is an awful thing to think of the enormous caverns that are entered
from some Roman churches, and undermine the city. Many churches
have crypts and subterranean chapels of great size, which, in the ancient
time, were baths, and secret chambers of temples, and what not: but
I do not speak of them. Beneath the church of St. Giovanni and
St. Paolo, there are the jaws of a terrific range of caverns, hewn out
of the rock, and said to have another outlet underneath the Coliseum
- tremendous darknesses of vast extent, half-buried in the earth and
unexplorable, where the dull torches, flashed by the attendants, glimmer
down long ranges of distant vaults branching to the right and left,
like streets in a city of the dead; and show the cold damp stealing
down the walls, drip-drop, drip-drop, to join the pools of water that
lie here and there, and never saw, or never will see, one ray of the
sun. Some accounts make these the prisons of the wild beasts destined
for the amphitheatre; some the prisons of the condemned gladiators;
some, both. But the legend most appalling to the fancy is, that
in the upper range (for there are two stories of these caves) the Early
Christians destined to be eaten at the Coliseum Shows, heard the wild
beasts, hungry for them, roaring down below; until, upon the night and
solitude of their captivity, there burst the sudden noon and life of
the vast theatre crowded to the parapet, and of these, their dreaded
neighbours, bounding in!
Below the church of San Sebastiano, two miles beyond the gate of San
Sebastiano, on the Appian Way, is the entrance to the catacombs of Rome
- quarries in the old time, but afterwards the hiding-places of the
Christians. These ghastly passages have been explored for twenty
miles; and form a chain of labyrinths, sixty miles in circumference.
A gaunt Franciscan friar, with a wild bright eye, was our only guide,
down into this profound and dreadful place. The narrow ways and
openings hither and thither, coupled with the dead and heavy air, soon
blotted out, in all of us, any recollection of the track by which we
had come: and I could not help thinking ‘Good Heaven, if, in a
sudden fit of madness, he should dash the torches out, or if he should
be seized with a fit, what would become of us!’ On we wandered,
among martyrs’ graves: passing great subterranean vaulted roads,
diverging in all directions, and choked up with heaps of stones, that
thieves and murderers may not take refuge there, and form a population
under Rome, even worse than that which lives between it and the sun.
Graves, graves, graves; Graves of men, of women, of their little children,
who ran crying to the persecutors, ‘We are Christians! We
are Christians!’ that they might be murdered with their parents;
Graves with the palm of martyrdom roughly cut into their stone boundaries,
and little niches, made to hold a vessel of the martyrs’ blood;
Graves of some who lived down here, for years together, ministering
to the rest, and preaching truth, and hope, and comfort, from the rude
altars, that bear witness to their fortitude at this hour; more roomy
graves, but far more terrible, where hundreds, being surprised, were
hemmed in and walled up: buried before Death, and killed by slow starvation.
‘The Triumphs of the Faith are not above ground in our splendid
churches,’ said the friar, looking round upon us, as we stopped
to rest in one of the low passages, with bones and dust surrounding
us on every side. ‘They are here! Among the Martyrs’
Graves!’ He was a gentle, earnest man, and said it from
his heart; but when I thought how Christian men have dealt with one
another; how, perverting our most merciful religion, they have hunted
down and tortured, burnt and beheaded, strangled, slaughtered, and oppressed
each other; I pictured to myself an agony surpassing any that this Dust
had suffered with the breath of life yet lingering in it, and how these
great and constant hearts would have been shaken - how they would have
quailed and drooped - if a foreknowledge of the deeds that professing
Christians would commit in the Great Name for which they died, could
have rent them with its own unutterable anguish, on the cruel wheel,
and bitter cross, and in the fearful fire.
Such are the spots and patches in my dream of churches, that remain
apart, and keep their separate identity. I have a fainter recollection,
sometimes of the relics; of the fragments of the pillar of the Temple
that was rent in twain; of the portion of the table that was spread
for the Last Supper; of the well at which the woman of Samaria gave
water to Our Saviour; of two columns from the house of Pontius Pilate;
of the stone to which the Sacred hands were bound, when the scourging
was performed; of the grid-iron of Saint Lawrence, and the stone below
it, marked with the frying of his fat and blood; these set a shadowy
mark on some cathedrals, as an old story, or a fable might, and stop
them for an instant, as they flit before me. The rest is a vast
wilderness of consecrated buildings of all shapes and fancies, blending
one with another; of battered pillars of old Pagan temples, dug up from
the ground, and forced, like giant captives, to support the roofs of
Christian churches; of pictures, bad, and wonderful, and impious, and
ridiculous; of kneeling people, curling incense, tinkling bells, and
sometimes (but not often) of a swelling organ: of Madonne, with their
breasts stuck full of swords, arranged in a half-circle like a modern
fan; of actual skeletons of dead saints, hideously attired in gaudy
satins, silks, and velvets trimmed with gold: their withered crust of
skull adorned with precious jewels, or with chaplets of crushed flowers;
sometimes of people gathered round the pulpit, and a monk within it
stretching out the crucifix, and preaching fiercely: the sun just streaming
down through some high window on the sail-cloth stretched above him
and across the church, to keep his high-pitched voice from being lost
among the echoes of the roof. Then my tired memory comes out upon
a flight of steps, where knots of people are asleep, or basking in the
light; and strolls away, among the rags, and smells, and palaces, and
hovels, of an old Italian street.
On one Saturday morning (the eighth of March), a man was beheaded here.
Nine or ten months before, he had waylaid a Bavarian countess, travelling
as a pilgrim to Rome - alone and on foot, of course - and performing,
it is said, that act of piety for the fourth time. He saw her
change a piece of gold at Viterbo, where he lived; followed her; bore
her company on her journey for some forty miles or more, on the treacherous
pretext of protecting her; attacked her, in the fulfilment of his unrelenting
purpose, on the Campagna, within a very short distance of Rome, near
to what is called (but what is not) the Tomb of Nero; robbed her; and
beat her to death with her own pilgrim’s staff. He was newly
married, and gave some of her apparel to his wife: saying that he had
bought it at a fair. She, however, who had seen the pilgrim-countess
passing through their town, recognised some trifle as having belonged
to her. Her husband then told her what he had done. She,
in confession, told a priest; and the man was taken, within four days
after the commission of the murder.
There are no fixed times for the administration of justice, or its execution,
in this unaccountable country; and he had been in prison ever since.
On the Friday, as he was dining with the other prisoners, they came
and told him he was to be beheaded next morning, and took him away.
It is very unusual to execute in Lent; but his crime being a very bad
one, it was deemed advisable to make an example of him at that time,
when great numbers of pilgrims were coming towards Rome, from all parts,
for the Holy Week. I heard of this on the Friday evening, and
saw the bills up at the churches, calling on the people to pray for
the criminal’s soul. So, I determined to go, and see him
executed.
The beheading was appointed for fourteen and a-half o’clock, Roman
time: or a quarter before nine in the forenoon. I had two friends
with me; and as we did not know but that the crowd might be very great,
we were on the spot by half-past seven. The place of execution
was near the church of San Giovanni decolláto (a doubtful compliment
to Saint John the Baptist) in one of the impassable back streets without
any footway, of which a great part of Rome is composed - a street of
rotten houses, which do not seem to belong to anybody, and do not seem
to have ever been inhabited, and certainly were never built on any plan,
or for any particular purpose, and have no window-sashes, and are a
little like deserted breweries, and might be warehouses but for having
nothing in them. Opposite to one of these, a white house, the
scaffold was built. An untidy, unpainted, uncouth, crazy-looking
thing of course: some seven feet high, perhaps: with a tall, gallows-shaped
frame rising above it, in which was the knife, charged with a ponderous
mass of iron, all ready to descend, and glittering brightly in the morning
sun, whenever it looked out, now and then, from behind a cloud.
There were not many people lingering about; and these were kept at a
considerable distance from the scaffold, by parties of the Pope’s
dragoons. Two or three hundred foot-soldiers were under arms,
standing at ease in clusters here and there; and the officers were walking
up and down in twos and threes, chatting together, and smoking cigars.
At the end of the street, was an open space, where there would be a
dust-heap, and piles of broken crockery, and mounds of vegetable refuse,
but for such things being thrown anywhere and everywhere in Rome, and
favouring no particular sort of locality. We got into a kind of
wash-house, belonging to a dwelling-house on this spot; and standing
there in an old cart, and on a heap of cartwheels piled against the
wall, looked, through a large grated window, at the scaffold, and straight
down the street beyond it until, in consequence of its turning off abruptly
to the left, our perspective was brought to a sudden termination, and
had a corpulent officer, in a cocked hat, for its crowning feature.
Nine o’clock struck, and ten o’clock struck, and nothing
happened. All the bells of all the churches rang as usual.
A little parliament of dogs assembled in the open space, and chased
each other, in and out among the soldiers. Fierce-looking Romans
of the lowest class, in blue cloaks, russet cloaks, and rags uncloaked,
came and went, and talked together. Women and children fluttered,
on the skirts of the scanty crowd. One large muddy spot was left
quite bare, like a bald place on a man’s head. A cigar-merchant,
with an earthen pot of charcoal ashes in one hand, went up and down,
crying his wares. A pastry-merchant divided his attention between
the scaffold and his customers. Boys tried to climb up walls,
and tumbled down again. Priests and monks elbowed a passage for
themselves among the people, and stood on tiptoe for a sight of the
knife: then went away. Artists, in inconceivable hats of the middle-ages,
and beards (thank Heaven!) of no age at all, flashed picturesque scowls
about them from their stations in the throng. One gentleman (connected
with the fine arts, I presume) went up and down in a pair of Hessian-boots,
with a red beard hanging down on his breast, and his long and bright
red hair, plaited into two tails, one on either side of his head, which
fell over his shoulders in front of him, very nearly to his waist, and
were carefully entwined and braided!
Eleven o’clock struck and still nothing happened. A rumour
got about, among the crowd, that the criminal would not confess; in
which case, the priests would keep him until the Ave Maria (sunset);
for it is their merciful custom never finally to turn the crucifix away
from a man at that pass, as one refusing to be shriven, and consequently
a sinner abandoned of the Saviour, until then. People began to
drop off. The officers shrugged their shoulders and looked doubtful.
The dragoons, who came riding up below our window, every now and then,
to order an unlucky hackney-coach or cart away, as soon as it had comfortably
established itself, and was covered with exulting people (but never
before), became imperious, and quick-tempered. The bald place
hadn’t a straggling hair upon it; and the corpulent officer, crowning
the perspective, took a world of snuff.
Suddenly, there was a noise of trumpets. ‘Attention!’
was among the foot-soldiers instantly. They were marched up to
the scaffold and formed round it. The dragoons galloped to their
nearer stations too. The guillotine became the centre of a wood
of bristling bayonets and shining sabres. The people closed round
nearer, on the flank of the soldiery. A long straggling stream
of men and boys, who had accompanied the procession from the prison,
came pouring into the open space. The bald spot was scarcely distinguishable
from the rest. The cigar and pastry-merchants resigned all thoughts
of business, for the moment, and abandoning themselves wholly to pleasure,
got good situations in the crowd. The perspective ended, now,
in a troop of dragoons. And the corpulent officer, sword in hand,
looked hard at a church close to him, which he could see, but we, the
crowd, could not.
After a short delay, some monks were seen approaching to the scaffold
from this church; and above their heads, coming on slowly and gloomily,
the effigy of Christ upon the cross, canopied with black. This
was carried round the foot of the scaffold, to the front, and turned
towards the criminal, that he might see it to the last. It was
hardly in its place, when he appeared on the platform, bare-footed;
his hands bound; and with the collar and neck of his shirt cut away,
almost to the shoulder. A young man - six-and-twenty - vigorously
made, and well-shaped. Face pale; small dark moustache; and dark
brown hair.
He had refused to confess, it seemed, without first having his wife
brought to see him; and they had sent an escort for her, which had occasioned
the delay.
He immediately kneeled down, below the knife. His neck fitting
into a hole, made for the purpose, in a cross plank, was shut down,
by another plank above; exactly like the pillory. Immediately
below him was a leathern bag. And into it his head rolled instantly.
The executioner was holding it by the hair, and walking with it round
the scaffold, showing it to the people, before one quite knew that the
knife had fallen heavily, and with a rattling sound.
When it had travelled round the four sides of the scaffold, it was set
upon a pole in front - a little patch of black and white, for the long
street to stare at, and the flies to settle on. The eyes were
turned upward, as if he had avoided the sight of the leathern bag, and
looked to the crucifix. Every tinge and hue of life had left it
in that instant. It was dull, cold, livid, wax. The body
also.
There was a great deal of blood. When we left the window, and
went close up to the scaffold, it was very dirty; one of the two men
who were throwing water over it, turning to help the other lift the
body into a shell, picked his way as through mire. A strange appearance
was the apparent annihilation of the neck. The head was taken
off so close, that it seemed as if the knife had narrowly escaped crushing
the jaw, or shaving off the ear; and the body looked as if there were
nothing left above the shoulder.
Nobody cared, or was at all affected. There was no manifestation
of disgust, or pity, or indignation, or sorrow. My empty pockets
were tried, several times, in the crowd immediately below the scaffold,
as the corpse was being put into its coffin. It was an ugly, filthy,
careless, sickening spectacle; meaning nothing but butchery beyond the
momentary interest, to the one wretched actor. Yes! Such
a sight has one meaning and one warning. Let me not forget it.
The speculators in the lottery, station themselves at favourable points
for counting the gouts of blood that spirt out, here or there; and buy
that number. It is pretty sure to have a run upon it.
The body was carted away in due time, the knife cleansed, the scaffold
taken down, and all the hideous apparatus removed. The executioner:
an outlaw ex officio (what a satire on the Punishment!) who dare
not, for his life, cross the Bridge of St. Angelo but to do his work:
retreated to his lair, and the show was over.
At the head of the collections in the palaces of Rome, the Vatican,
of course, with its treasures of art, its enormous galleries, and staircases,
and suites upon suites of immense chambers, ranks highest and stands
foremost. Many most noble statues, and wonderful pictures, are
there; nor is it heresy to say that there is a considerable amount of
rubbish there, too. When any old piece of sculpture dug out of
the ground, finds a place in a gallery because it is old, and without
any reference to its intrinsic merits: and finds admirers by the hundred,
because it is there, and for no other reason on earth: there will be
no lack of objects, very indifferent in the plain eyesight of any one
who employs so vulgar a property, when he may wear the spectacles of
Cant for less than nothing, and establish himself as a man of taste
for the mere trouble of putting them on.
I unreservedly confess, for myself, that I cannot leave my natural perception
of what is natural and true, at a palace-door, in Italy or elsewhere,
as I should leave my shoes if I were travelling in the East. I
cannot forget that there are certain expressions of face, natural to
certain passions, and as unchangeable in their nature as the gait of
a lion, or the flight of an eagle. I cannot dismiss from my certain
knowledge, such commonplace facts as the ordinary proportion of men’s
arms, and legs, and heads; and when I meet with performances that do
violence to these experiences and recollections, no matter where they
may be, I cannot honestly admire them, and think it best to say so;
in spite of high critical advice that we should sometimes feign an admiration,
though we have it not.
Therefore, I freely acknowledge that when I see a jolly young Waterman
representing a cherubim, or a Barclay and Perkins’s Drayman depicted
as an Evangelist, I see nothing to commend or admire in the performance,
however great its reputed Painter. Neither am I partial to libellous
Angels, who play on fiddles and bassoons, for the edification of sprawling
monks apparently in liquor. Nor to those Monsieur Tonsons of galleries,
Saint Francis and Saint Sebastian; both of whom I submit should have
very uncommon and rare merits, as works of art, to justify their compound
multiplication by Italian Painters.
It seems to me, too, that the indiscriminate and determined raptures
in which some critics indulge, is incompatible with the true appreciation
of the really great and transcendent works. I cannot imagine,
for example, how the resolute champion of undeserving pictures can soar
to the amazing beauty of Titian’s great picture of the Assumption
of the Virgin at Venice; or how the man who is truly affected by the
sublimity of that exquisite production, or who is truly sensible of
the beauty of Tintoretto’s great picture of the Assembly of the
Blessed in the same place, can discern in Michael Angelo’s Last
Judgment, in the Sistine chapel, any general idea, or one pervading
thought, in harmony with the stupendous subject. He who will contemplate
Raphael’s masterpiece, the Transfiguration, and will go away into
another chamber of that same Vatican, and contemplate another design
of Raphael, representing (in incredible caricature) the miraculous stopping
of a great fire by Leo the Fourth - and who will say that he admires
them both, as works of extraordinary genius - must, as I think, be wanting
in his powers of perception in one of the two instances, and, probably,
in the high and lofty one.
It is easy to suggest a doubt, but I have a great doubt whether, sometimes,
the rules of art are not too strictly observed, and whether it is quite
well or agreeable that we should know beforehand, where this figure
will be turning round, and where that figure will be lying down, and
where there will be drapery in folds, and so forth. When I observe
heads inferior to the subject, in pictures of merit, in Italian galleries,
I do not attach that reproach to the Painter, for I have a suspicion
that these great men, who were, of necessity, very much in the hands
of monks and priests, painted monks and priests a great deal too often.
I frequently see, in pictures of real power, heads quite below the story
and the painter: and I invariably observe that those heads are of the
Convent stamp, and have their counterparts among the Convent inmates
of this hour; so, I have settled with myself that, in such cases, the
lameness was not with the painter, but with the vanity and ignorance
of certain of his employers, who would be apostles - on canvas, at all
events.
The exquisite grace and beauty of Canova’s statues; the wonderful
gravity and repose of many of the ancient works in sculpture, both in
the Capitol and the Vatican; and the strength and fire of many others;
are, in their different ways, beyond all reach of words. They
are especially impressive and delightful, after the works of Bernini
and his disciples, in which the churches of Rome, from St. Peter’s
downward, abound; and which are, I verily believe, the most detestable
class of productions in the wide world. I would infinitely rather
(as mere works of art) look upon the three deities of the Past, the
Present, and the Future, in the Chinese Collection, than upon the best
of these breezy maniacs; whose every fold of drapery is blown inside-out;
whose smallest vein, or artery, is as big as an ordinary forefinger;
whose hair is like a nest of lively snakes; and whose attitudes put
all other extravagance to shame. Insomuch that I do honestly believe,
there can be no place in the world, where such intolerable abortions,
begotten of the sculptor’s chisel, are to be found in such profusion,
as in Rome.
There is a fine collection of Egyptian antiquities, in the Vatican;
and the ceilings of the rooms in which they are arranged, are painted
to represent a starlight sky in the Desert. It may seem an odd
idea, but it is very effective. The grim, half-human monsters
from the temples, look more grim and monstrous underneath the deep dark
blue; it sheds a strange uncertain gloomy air on everything - a mystery
adapted to the objects; and you leave them, as you find them, shrouded
in a solemn night.
In the private palaces, pictures are seen to the best advantage.
There are seldom so many in one place that the attention need become
distracted, or the eye confused. You see them very leisurely;
and are rarely interrupted by a crowd of people. There are portraits
innumerable, by Titian, and Rembrandt, and Vandyke; heads by Guido,
and Domenichino, and Carlo Dolci; various subjects by Correggio, and
Murillo, and Raphael, and Salvator Rosa, and Spagnoletto - many of which
it would be difficult, indeed, to praise too highly, or to praise enough;
such is their tenderness and grace; their noble elevation, purity, and
beauty.
The portrait of Beatrice di Cenci, in the Palazzo Berberini, is a picture
almost impossible to be forgotten. Through the transcendent sweetness
and beauty of the face, there is a something shining out, that haunts
me. I see it now, as I see this paper, or my pen. The head
is loosely draped in white; the light hair falling down below the linen
folds. She has turned suddenly towards you; and there is an expression
in the eyes - although they are very tender and gentle - as if the wildness
of a momentary terror, or distraction, had been struggled with and overcome,
that instant; and nothing but a celestial hope, and a beautiful sorrow,
and a desolate earthly helplessness remained. Some stories say
that Guido painted it, the night before her execution; some other stories,
that he painted it from memory, after having seen her, on her way to
the scaffold. I am willing to believe that, as you see her on
his canvas, so she turned towards him, in the crowd, from the first
sight of the axe, and stamped upon his mind a look which he has stamped
on mine as though I had stood beside him in the concourse. The
guilty palace of the Cenci: blighting a whole quarter of the town, as
it stands withering away by grains: had that face, to my fancy, in its
dismal porch, and at its black, blind windows, and flitting up and down
its dreary stairs, and growing out of the darkness of the ghostly galleries.
The History is written in the Painting; written, in the dying girl’s
face, by Nature’s own hand. And oh! how in that one touch
she puts to flight (instead of making kin) the puny world that claim
to be related to her, in right of poor conventional forgeries!
I saw in the Palazzo Spada, the statue of Pompey; the statue at whose
base Caesar fell. A stern, tremendous figure! I imagined
one of greater finish: of the last refinement: full of delicate touches:
losing its distinctness, in the giddy eyes of one whose blood was ebbing
before it, and settling into some such rigid majesty as this, as Death
came creeping over the upturned face.
The excursions in the neighbourhood of Rome are charming, and would
be full of interest were it only for the changing views they afford,
of the wild Campagna. But, every inch of ground, in every direction,
is rich in associations, and in natural beauties. There is Albano,
with its lovely lake and wooded shore, and with its wine, that certainly
has not improved since the days of Horace, and in these times hardly
justifies his panegyric. There is squalid Tivoli, with the river
Anio, diverted from its course, and plunging down, headlong, some eighty
feet in search of it. With its picturesque Temple of the Sibyl,
perched high on a crag; its minor waterfalls glancing and sparkling
in the sun; and one good cavern yawning darkly, where the river takes
a fearful plunge and shoots on, low down under beetling rocks.
There, too, is the Villa d’Este, deserted and decaying among groves
of melancholy pine and cypress trees, where it seems to lie in state.
Then, there is Frascati, and, on the steep above it, the ruins of Tusculum,
where Cicero lived, and wrote, and adorned his favourite house (some
fragments of it may yet be seen there), and where Cato was born.
We saw its ruined amphitheatre on a grey, dull day, when a shrill March
wind was blowing, and when the scattered stones of the old city lay
strewn about the lonely eminence, as desolate and dead as the ashes
of a long extinguished fire.
One day we walked out, a little party of three, to Albano, fourteen
miles distant; possessed by a great desire to go there by the ancient
Appian way, long since ruined and overgrown. We started at half-past
seven in the morning, and within an hour or so were out upon the open
Campagna. For twelve miles we went climbing on, over an unbroken
succession of mounds, and heaps, and hills, of ruin. Tombs and
temples, overthrown and prostrate; small fragments of columns, friezes,
pediments; great blocks of granite and marble; mouldering arches, grass-grown
and decayed; ruin enough to build a spacious city from; lay strewn about
us. Sometimes, loose walls, built up from these fragments by the
shepherds, came across our path; sometimes, a ditch between two mounds
of broken stones, obstructed our progress; sometimes, the fragments
themselves, rolling from beneath our feet, made it a toilsome matter
to advance; but it was always ruin. Now, we tracked a piece of
the old road, above the ground; now traced it, underneath a grassy covering,
as if that were its grave; but all the way was ruin. In the distance,
ruined aqueducts went stalking on their giant course along the plain;
and every breath of wind that swept towards us, stirred early flowers
and grasses, springing up, spontaneously, on miles of ruin. The
unseen larks above us, who alone disturbed the awful silence, had their
nests in ruin; and the fierce herdsmen, clad in sheepskins, who now
and then scowled out upon us from their sleeping nooks, were housed
in ruin. The aspect of the desolate Campagna in one direction,
where it was most level, reminded me of an American prairie; but what
is the solitude of a region where men have never dwelt, to that of a
Desert, where a mighty race have left their footprints in the earth
from which they have vanished; where the resting-places of their Dead,
have fallen like their Dead; and the broken hour-glass of Time is but
a heap of idle dust! Returning, by the road, at sunset! and looking,
from the distance, on the course we had taken in the morning, I almost
feel (as I had felt when I first saw it, at that hour) as if the sun
would never rise again, but looked its last, that night, upon a ruined
world.
To come again on Rome, by moonlight, after such an expedition, is a
fitting close to such a day. The narrow streets, devoid of footways,
and choked, in every obscure corner, by heaps of dunghill-rubbish, contrast
so strongly, in their cramped dimensions, and their filth, and darkness,
with the broad square before some haughty church: in the centre of which,
a hieroglyphic-covered obelisk, brought from Egypt in the days of the
Emperors, looks strangely on the foreign scene about it; or perhaps
an ancient pillar, with its honoured statue overthrown, supports a Christian
saint: Marcus Aurelius giving place to Paul, and Trajan to St. Peter.
Then, there are the ponderous buildings reared from the spoliation of
the Coliseum, shutting out the moon, like mountains: while here and
there, are broken arches and rent walls, through which it gushes freely,
as the life comes pouring from a wound. The little town of miserable
houses, walled, and shut in by barred gates, is the quarter where the
Jews are locked up nightly, when the clock strikes eight - a miserable
place, densely populated, and reeking with bad odours, but where the
people are industrious and money-getting. In the day-time, as
you make your way along the narrow streets, you see them all at work:
upon the pavement, oftener than in their dark and frouzy shops: furbishing
old clothes, and driving bargains.
Crossing from these patches of thick darkness, out into the moon once
more, the fountain of Trevi, welling from a hundred jets, and rolling
over mimic rocks, is silvery to the eye and ear. In the narrow
little throat of street, beyond, a booth, dressed out with flaring lamps,
and boughs of trees, attracts a group of sulky Romans round its smoky
coppers of hot broth, and cauliflower stew; its trays of fried fish,
and its flasks of wine. As you rattle round the sharply-twisting
corner, a lumbering sound is heard. The coachman stops abruptly,
and uncovers, as a van comes slowly by, preceded by a man who bears
a large cross; by a torch-bearer; and a priest: the latter chaunting
as he goes. It is the Dead Cart, with the bodies of the poor,
on their way to burial in the Sacred Field outside the walls, where
they will be thrown into the pit that will be covered with a stone to-night,
and sealed up for a year.
But whether, in this ride, you pass by obelisks, or columns ancient
temples, theatres, houses, porticoes, or forums: it is strange to see,
how every fragment, whenever it is possible, has been blended into some
modern structure, and made to serve some modern purpose - a wall, a
dwelling-place, a granary, a stable - some use for which it never was
designed, and associated with which it cannot otherwise than lamely
assort. It is stranger still, to see how many ruins of the old
mythology: how many fragments of obsolete legend and observance: have
been incorporated into the worship of Christian altars here; and how,
in numberless respects, the false faith and the true are fused into
a monstrous union.
From one part of the city, looking out beyond the walls, a squat and
stunted pyramid (the burial-place of Caius Cestius) makes an opaque
triangle in the moonlight. But, to an English traveller, it serves
to mark the grave of Shelley too, whose ashes lie beneath a little garden
near it. Nearer still, almost within its shadow, lie the bones
of Keats, ‘whose name is writ in water,’ that shines brightly
in the landscape of a calm Italian night.
The Holy Week in Rome is supposed to offer great attractions to all
visitors; but, saving for the sights of Easter Sunday, I would counsel
those who go to Rome for its own interest, to avoid it at that time.
The ceremonies, in general, are of the most tedious and wearisome kind;
the heat and crowd at every one of them, painfully oppressive; the noise,
hubbub, and confusion, quite distracting. We abandoned the pursuit
of these shows, very early in the proceedings, and betook ourselves
to the Ruins again. But, we plunged into the crowd for a share
of the best of the sights; and what we saw, I will describe to you.
At the Sistine chapel, on the Wednesday, we saw very little, for by
the time we reached it (though we were early) the besieging crowd had
filled it to the door, and overflowed into the adjoining hall, where
they were struggling, and squeezing, and mutually expostulating, and
making great rushes every time a lady was brought out faint, as if at
least fifty people could be accommodated in her vacant standing-room.
Hanging in the doorway of the chapel, was a heavy curtain, and this
curtain, some twenty people nearest to it, in their anxiety to hear
the chaunting of the Miserere, were continually plucking at, in opposition
to each other, that it might not fall down and stifle the sound of the
voices. The consequence was, that it occasioned the most extraordinary
confusion, and seemed to wind itself about the unwary, like a Serpent.
Now, a lady was wrapped up in it, and couldn’t be unwound.
Now, the voice of a stifling gentleman was heard inside it, beseeching
to be let out. Now, two muffled arms, no man could say of which
sex, struggled in it as in a sack. Now, it was carried by a rush,
bodily overhead into the chapel, like an awning. Now, it came
out the other way, and blinded one of the Pope’s Swiss Guard,
who had arrived, that moment, to set things to rights.
Being seated at a little distance, among two or three of the Pope’s
gentlemen, who were very weary and counting the minutes - as perhaps
his Holiness was too - we had better opportunities of observing this
eccentric entertainment, than of hearing the Miserere. Sometimes,
there was a swell of mournful voices that sounded very pathetic and
sad, and died away, into a low strain again; but that was all we heard.
At another time, there was the Exhibition of Relics in St. Peter’s,
which took place at between six and seven o’clock in the evening,
and was striking from the cathedral being dark and gloomy, and having
a great many people in it. The place into which the relics were
brought, one by one, by a party of three priests, was a high balcony
near the chief altar. This was the only lighted part of the church.
There are always a hundred and twelve lamps burning near the altar,
and there were two tall tapers, besides, near the black statue of St.
Peter; but these were nothing in such an immense edifice. The
gloom, and the general upturning of faces to the balcony, and the prostration
of true believers on the pavement, as shining objects, like pictures
or looking-glasses, were brought out and shown, had something effective
in it, despite the very preposterous manner in which they were held
up for the general edification, and the great elevation at which they
were displayed; which one would think rather calculated to diminish
the comfort derivable from a full conviction of their being genuine.
On the Thursday, we went to see the Pope convey the Sacrament from the
Sistine chapel, to deposit it in the Capella Paolina, another chapel
in the Vatican; - a ceremony emblematical of the entombment of the Saviour
before His Resurrection. We waited in a great gallery with a great
crowd of people (three-fourths of them English) for an hour or so, while
they were chaunting the Miserere, in the Sistine chapel again.
Both chapels opened out of the gallery; and the general attention was
concentrated on the occasional opening and shutting of the door of the
one for which the Pope was ultimately bound. None of these openings
disclosed anything more tremendous than a man on a ladder, lighting
a great quantity of candles; but at each and every opening, there was
a terrific rush made at this ladder and this man, something like (I
should think) a charge of the heavy British cavalry at Waterloo.
The man was never brought down, however, nor the ladder; for it performed
the strangest antics in the world among the crowd - where it was carried
by the man, when the candles were all lighted; and finally it was stuck
up against the gallery wall, in a very disorderly manner, just before
the opening of the other chapel, and the commencement of a new chaunt,
announced the approach of his Holiness. At this crisis, the soldiers
of the guard, who had been poking the crowd into all sorts of shapes,
formed down the gallery: and the procession came up, between the two
lines they made.
There were a few choristers, and then a great many priests, walking
two and two, and carrying - the good-looking priests at least - their
lighted tapers, so as to throw the light with a good effect upon their
faces: for the room was darkened. Those who were not handsome,
or who had not long beards, carried their tapers anyhow, and
abandoned themselves to spiritual contemplation. Meanwhile, the
chaunting was very monotonous and dreary. The procession passed
on, slowly, into the chapel, and the drone of voices went on, and came
on, with it, until the Pope himself appeared, walking under a white
satin canopy, and bearing the covered Sacrament in both hands; cardinals
and canons clustered round him, making a brilliant show. The soldiers
of the guard knelt down as he passed; all the bystanders bowed; and
so he passed on into the chapel: the white satin canopy being removed
from over him at the door, and a white satin parasol hoisted over his
poor old head, in place of it. A few more couples brought up the
rear, and passed into the chapel also. Then, the chapel door was
shut; and it was all over; and everybody hurried off headlong, as for
life or death, to see something else, and say it wasn’t worth
the trouble.
I think the most popular and most crowded sight (excepting those of
Easter Sunday and Monday, which are open to all classes of people) was
the Pope washing the feet of Thirteen men, representing the twelve apostles,
and Judas Iscariot. The place in which this pious office is performed,
is one of the chapels of St. Peter’s, which is gaily decorated
for the occasion; the thirteen sitting, ‘all of a row,’
on a very high bench, and looking particularly uncomfortable, with the
eyes of Heaven knows how many English, French, Americans, Swiss, Germans,
Russians, Swedes, Norwegians, and other foreigners, nailed to their
faces all the time. They are robed in white; and on their heads
they wear a stiff white cap, like a large English porter-pot, without
a handle. Each carries in his hand, a nosegay, of the size of
a fine cauliflower; and two of them, on this occasion, wore spectacles;
which, remembering the characters they sustained, I thought a droll
appendage to the costume. There was a great eye to character.
St. John was represented by a good-looking young man. St. Peter,
by a grave-looking old gentleman, with a flowing brown beard; and Judas
Iscariot by such an enormous hypocrite (I could not make out, though,
whether the expression of his face was real or assumed) that if he had
acted the part to the death and had gone away and hanged himself, he
would have left nothing to be desired.
As the two large boxes, appropriated to ladies at this sight, were full
to the throat, and getting near was hopeless, we posted off, along with
a great crowd, to be in time at the Table, where the Pope, in person,
waits on these Thirteen; and after a prodigious struggle at the Vatican
staircase, and several personal conflicts with the Swiss guard, the
whole crowd swept into the room. It was a long gallery hung with
drapery of white and red, with another great box for ladies (who are
obliged to dress in black at these ceremonies, and to wear black veils),
a royal box for the King of Naples and his party; and the table itself,
which, set out like a ball supper, and ornamented with golden figures
of the real apostles, was arranged on an elevated platform on one side
of the gallery. The counterfeit apostles’ knives and forks
were laid out on that side of the table which was nearest to the wall,
so that they might be stared at again, without let or hindrance.
The body of the room was full of male strangers; the crowd immense;
the heat very great; and the pressure sometimes frightful. It
was at its height, when the stream came pouring in, from the feet-washing;
and then there were such shrieks and outcries, that a party of Piedmontese
dragoons went to the rescue of the Swiss guard, and helped them to calm
the tumult.
The ladies were particularly ferocious, in their struggles for places.
One lady of my acquaintance was seized round the waist, in the ladies’
box, by a strong matron, and hoisted out of her place; and there was
another lady (in a back row in the same box) who improved her position
by sticking a large pin into the ladies before her.
The gentlemen about me were remarkably anxious to see what was on the
table; and one Englishman seemed to have embarked the whole energy of
his nature in the determination to discover whether there was any mustard.
‘By Jupiter there’s vinegar!’ I heard him say to his
friend, after he had stood on tiptoe an immense time, and had been crushed
and beaten on all sides. ‘And there’s oil! I
saw them distinctly, in cruets! Can any gentleman, in front there,
see mustard on the table? Sir, will you oblige me! Do
you see a Mustard-Pot?’
The apostles and Judas appearing on the platform, after much expectation,
were marshalled, in line, in front of the table, with Peter at the top;
and a good long stare was taken at them by the company, while twelve
of them took a long smell at their nosegays, and Judas - moving his
lips very obtrusively - engaged in inward prayer. Then, the Pope,
clad in a scarlet robe, and wearing on his head a skull-cap of white
satin, appeared in the midst of a crowd of Cardinals and other dignitaries,
and took in his hand a little golden ewer, from which he poured a little
water over one of Peter’s hands, while one attendant held a golden
basin; a second, a fine cloth; a third, Peter’s nosegay, which
was taken from him during the operation. This his Holiness performed,
with considerable expedition, on every man in the line (Judas, I observed,
to be particularly overcome by his condescension); and then the whole
Thirteen sat down to dinner. Grace said by the Pope. Peter
in the chair.
There was white wine, and red wine: and the dinner looked very good.
The courses appeared in portions, one for each apostle: and these being
presented to the Pope, by Cardinals upon their knees, were by him handed
to the Thirteen. The manner in which Judas grew more white-livered
over his victuals, and languished, with his head on one side, as if
he had no appetite, defies all description. Peter was a good,
sound, old man, and went in, as the saying is, ‘to win;’
eating everything that was given him (he got the best: being first in
the row) and saying nothing to anybody. The dishes appeared to
be chiefly composed of fish and vegetables. The Pope helped the
Thirteen to wine also; and, during the whole dinner, somebody read something
aloud, out of a large book - the Bible, I presume - which nobody could
hear, and to which nobody paid the least attention. The Cardinals,
and other attendants, smiled to each other, from time to time, as if
the thing were a great farce; and if they thought so, there is little
doubt they were perfectly right. His Holiness did what he had
to do, as a sensible man gets through a troublesome ceremony, and seemed
very glad when it was all over.
The Pilgrims’ Suppers: where lords and ladies waited on the Pilgrims,
in token of humility, and dried their feet when they had been well washed
by deputy: were very attractive. But, of all the many spectacles
of dangerous reliance on outward observances, in themselves mere empty
forms, none struck me half so much as the Scala Santa, or Holy Staircase,
which I saw several times, but to the greatest advantage, or disadvantage,
on Good Friday.
This holy staircase is composed of eight-and-twenty steps, said to have
belonged to Pontius Pilate’s house and to be the identical stair
on which Our Saviour trod, in coming down from the judgment-seat.
Pilgrims ascend it, only on their knees. It is steep; and, at
the summit, is a chapel, reported to be full of relics; into which they
peep through some iron bars, and then come down again, by one of two
side staircases, which are not sacred, and may be walked on.
On Good Friday, there were, on a moderate computation, a hundred people,
slowly shuffling up these stairs, on their knees, at one time; while
others, who were going up, or had come down - and a few who had done
both, and were going up again for the second time - stood loitering
in the porch below, where an old gentleman in a sort of watch-box, rattled
a tin canister, with a slit in the top, incessantly, to remind them
that he took the money. The majority were country-people, male
and female. There were four or five Jesuit priests, however, and
some half-dozen well-dressed women. A whole school of boys, twenty
at least, were about half-way up - evidently enjoying it very much.
They were all wedged together, pretty closely; but the rest of the company
gave the boys as wide a berth as possible, in consequence of their betraying
some recklessness in the management of their boots.
I never, in my life, saw anything at once so ridiculous, and so unpleasant,
as this sight - ridiculous in the absurd incidents inseparable from
it; and unpleasant in its senseless and unmeaning degradation.
There are two steps to begin with, and then a rather broad landing.
The more rigid climbers went along this landing on their knees, as well
as up the stairs; and the figures they cut, in their shuffling progress
over the level surface, no description can paint. Then, to see
them watch their opportunity from the porch, and cut in where there
was a place next the wall! And to see one man with an umbrella
(brought on purpose, for it was a fine day) hoisting himself, unlawfully,
from stair to stair! And to observe a demure lady of fifty-five
or so, looking back, every now and then, to assure herself that her
legs were properly disposed!
There were such odd differences in the speed of different people, too.
Some got on as if they were doing a match against time; others stopped
to say a prayer on every step. This man touched every stair with
his forehead, and kissed it; that man scratched his head all the way.
The boys got on brilliantly, and were up and down again before the old
lady had accomplished her half-dozen stairs. But most of the penitents
came down, very sprightly and fresh, as having done a real good substantial
deed which it would take a good deal of sin to counterbalance; and the
old gentleman in the watch-box was down upon them with his canister
while they were in this humour, I promise you.
As if such a progress were not in its nature inevitably droll enough,
there lay, on the top of the stairs, a wooden figure on a crucifix,
resting on a sort of great iron saucer: so rickety and unsteady, that
whenever an enthusiastic person kissed the figure, with more than usual
devotion, or threw a coin into the saucer, with more than common readiness
(for it served in this respect as a second or supplementary canister),
it gave a great leap and rattle, and nearly shook the attendant lamp
out: horribly frightening the people further down, and throwing the
guilty party into unspeakable embarrassment.
On Easter Sunday, as well as on the preceding Thursday, the Pope bestows
his benediction on the people, from the balcony in front of St. Peter’s.
This Easter Sunday was a day so bright and blue: so cloudless, balmy,
wonderfully bright: that all the previous bad weather vanished from
the recollection in a moment. I had seen the Thursday’s
Benediction dropping damply on some hundreds of umbrellas, but there
was not a sparkle then, in all the hundred fountains of Rome - such
fountains as they are! - and on this Sunday morning they were running
diamonds. The miles of miserable streets through which we drove
(compelled to a certain course by the Pope’s dragoons: the Roman
police on such occasions) were so full of colour, that nothing in them
was capable of wearing a faded aspect. The common people came
out in their gayest dresses; the richer people in their smartest vehicles;
Cardinals rattled to the church of the Poor Fishermen in their state
carriages; shabby magnificence flaunted its thread-bare liveries and
tarnished cocked hats, in the sun; and every coach in Rome was put in
requisition for the Great Piazza of St. Peter’s.
One hundred and fifty thousand people were there at least! Yet
there was ample room. How many carriages were there, I don’t
know; yet there was room for them too, and to spare. The great
steps of the church were densely crowded. There were many of the
Contadini, from Albano (who delight in red), in that part of the square,
and the mingling of bright colours in the crowd was beautiful.
Below the steps the troops were ranged. In the magnificent proportions
of the place they looked like a bed of flowers. Sulky Romans,
lively peasants from the neighbouring country, groups of pilgrims from
distant parts of Italy, sight-seeing foreigners of all nations, made
a murmur in the clear air, like so many insects; and high above them
all, plashing and bubbling, and making rainbow colours in the light,
the two delicious fountains welled and tumbled bountifully.
A kind of bright carpet was hung over the front of the balcony; and
the sides of the great window were bedecked with crimson drapery.
An awning was stretched, too, over the top, to screen the old man from
the hot rays of the sun. As noon approached, all eyes were turned
up to this window. In due time, the chair was seen approaching
to the front, with the gigantic fans of peacock’s feathers, close
behind. The doll within it (for the balcony is very high) then
rose up, and stretched out its tiny arms, while all the male spectators
in the square uncovered, and some, but not by any means the greater
part, kneeled down. The guns upon the ramparts of the Castle of
St. Angelo proclaimed, next moment, that the benediction was given;
drums beat; trumpets sounded; arms clashed; and the great mass below,
suddenly breaking into smaller heaps, and scattering here and there
in rills, was stirred like parti-coloured sand.
What a bright noon it was, as we rode away! The Tiber was no longer
yellow, but blue. There was a blush on the old bridges, that made
them fresh and hale again. The Pantheon, with its majestic front,
all seamed and furrowed like an old face, had summer light upon its
battered walls. Every squalid and desolate hut in the Eternal
City (bear witness every grim old palace, to the filth and misery of
the plebeian neighbour that elbows it, as certain as Time has laid its
grip on its patrician head!) was fresh and new with some ray of the
sun. The very prison in the crowded street, a whirl of carriages
and people, had some stray sense of the day, dropping through its chinks
and crevices: and dismal prisoners who could not wind their faces round
the barricading of the blocked-up windows, stretched out their hands,
and clinging to the rusty bars, turned them towards the overflowing
street: as if it were a cheerful fire, and could be shared in, that
way.
But, when the night came on, without a cloud to dim the full moon, what
a sight it was to see the Great Square full once more, and the whole
church, from the cross to the ground, lighted with innumerable lanterns,
tracing out the architecture, and winking and shining all round the
colonnade of the piazza! And what a sense of exultation, joy,
delight, it was, when the great bell struck half-past seven - on the
instant - to behold one bright red mass of fire, soar gallantly from
the top of the cupola to the extremest summit of the cross, and the
moment it leaped into its place, become the signal of a bursting out
of countless lights, as great, and red, and blazing as itself, from
every part of the gigantic church; so that every cornice, capital, and
smallest ornament of stone, expressed itself in fire: and the black,
solid groundwork of the enormous dome seemed to grow transparent as
an egg-shell!
A train of gunpowder, an electric chain - nothing could be fired, more
suddenly and swiftly, than this second illumination; and when we had
got away, and gone upon a distant height, and looked towards it two
hours afterwards, there it still stood, shining and glittering in the
calm night like a jewel! Not a line of its proportions wanting;
not an angle blunted; not an atom of its radiance lost.
The next night - Easter Monday - there was a great display of fireworks
from the Castle of St. Angelo. We hired a room in an opposite
house, and made our way, to our places, in good time, through a dense
mob of people choking up the square in front, and all the avenues leading
to it; and so loading the bridge by which the castle is approached,
that it seemed ready to sink into the rapid Tiber below. There
are statues on this bridge (execrable works), and, among them, great
vessels full of burning tow were placed: glaring strangely on the faces
of the crowd, and not less strangely on the stone counterfeits above
them.
The show began with a tremendous discharge of cannon; and then, for
twenty minutes or half an hour, the whole castle was one incessant sheet
of fire, and labyrinth of blazing wheels of every colour, size, and
speed: while rockets streamed into the sky, not by ones or twos, or
scores, but hundreds at a time. The concluding burst - the Girandola
- was like the blowing up into the air of the whole massive castle,
without smoke or dust.
In half an hour afterwards, the immense concourse had dispersed; the
moon was looking calmly down upon her wrinkled image in the river; and
half-a-dozen men and boys, with bits of lighted candle in their hands:
moving here and there, in search of anything worth having, that might
have been dropped in the press: had the whole scene to themselves.
By way of contrast we rode out into old ruined Rome, after all this
firing and booming, to take our leave of the Coliseum. I had seen
it by moonlight before (I could never get through a day without going
back to it), but its tremendous solitude that night is past all telling.
The ghostly pillars in the Forum; the Triumphal Arches of Old Emperors;
those enormous masses of ruins which were once their palaces; the grass-grown
mounds that mark the graves of ruined temples; the stones of the Via
Sacra, smooth with the tread of feet in ancient Rome; even these were
dimmed, in their transcendent melancholy, by the dark ghost of its bloody
holidays, erect and grim; haunting the old scene; despoiled by pillaging
Popes and fighting Princes, but not laid; wringing wild hands of weed,
and grass, and bramble; and lamenting to the night in every gap and
broken arch - the shadow of its awful self, immovable!
As we lay down on the grass of the Campagna, next day, on our way to
Florence, hearing the larks sing, we saw that a little wooden cross
had been erected on the spot where the poor Pilgrim Countess was murdered.
So, we piled some loose stones about it, as the beginning of a mound
to her memory, and wondered if we should ever rest there again, and
look back at Rome.
CHAPTER XI - A RAPID DIORAMA
We are bound for Naples! And we cross the threshold of the Eternal
City at yonder gate, the Gate of San Giovanni Laterano, where the two
last objects that attract the notice of a departing visitor, and the
two first objects that attract the notice of an arriving one, are a
proud church and a decaying ruin - good emblems of Rome.
Our way lies over the Campagna, which looks more solemn on a bright
blue day like this, than beneath a darker sky; the great extent of ruin
being plainer to the eye: and the sunshine through the arches of the
broken aqueducts, showing other broken arches shining through them in
the melancholy distance. When we have traversed it, and look back
from Albano, its dark, undulating surface lies below us like a stagnant
lake, or like a broad, dull Lethe flowing round the walls of Rome, and
separating it from all the world! How often have the Legions,
in triumphant march, gone glittering across that purple waste, so silent
and unpeopled now! How often has the train of captives looked,
with sinking hearts, upon the distant city, and beheld its population
pouring out, to hail the return of their conqueror! What riot,
sensuality and murder, have run mad in the vast palaces now heaps of
brick and shattered marble! What glare of fires, and roar of popular
tumult, and wail of pestilence and famine, have come sweeping over the
wild plain where nothing is now heard but the wind, and where the solitary
lizards gambol unmolested in the sun!
The train of wine-carts going into Rome, each driven by a shaggy peasant
reclining beneath a little gipsy-fashioned canopy of sheep-skin, is
ended now, and we go toiling up into a higher country where there are
trees. The next day brings us on the Pontine Marshes, wearily
flat and lonesome, and overgrown with brushwood, and swamped with water,
but with a fine road made across them, shaded by a long, long avenue.
Here and there, we pass a solitary guard-house; here and there a hovel,
deserted, and walled up. Some herdsmen loiter on the banks of
the stream beside the road, and sometimes a flat-bottomed boat, towed
by a man, comes rippling idly along it. A horseman passes occasionally,
carrying a long gun cross-wise on the saddle before him, and attended
by fierce dogs; but there is nothing else astir save the wind and the
shadows, until we come in sight of Terracina.
How blue and bright the sea, rolling below the windows of the inn so
famous in robber stories! How picturesque the great crags and
points of rock overhanging to-morrow’s narrow road, where galley-slaves
are working in the quarries above, and the sentinels who guard them
lounge on the sea-shore! All night there is the murmur of the
sea beneath the stars; and, in the morning, just at daybreak, the prospect
suddenly becoming expanded, as if by a miracle, reveals - in the far
distance, across the sea there! - Naples with its islands, and Vesuvius
spouting fire! Within a quarter of an hour, the whole is gone
as if it were a vision in the clouds, and there is nothing but the sea
and sky.
The Neapolitan frontier crossed, after two hours’ travelling;
and the hungriest of soldiers and custom-house officers with difficulty
appeased; we enter, by a gateless portal, into the first Neapolitan
town - Fondi. Take note of Fondi, in the name of all that is wretched
and beggarly.
A filthy channel of mud and refuse meanders down the centre of the miserable
streets, fed by obscene rivulets that trickle from the abject houses.
There is not a door, a window, or a shutter; not a roof, a wall, a post,
or a pillar, in all Fondi, but is decayed, and crazy, and rotting away.
The wretched history of the town, with all its sieges and pillages by
Barbarossa and the rest, might have been acted last year. How
the gaunt dogs that sneak about the miserable streets, come to be alive,
and undevoured by the people, is one of the enigmas of the world.
A hollow-cheeked and scowling people they are! All beggars; but
that’s nothing. Look at them as they gather round.
Some, are too indolent to come down-stairs, or are too wisely mistrustful
of the stairs, perhaps, to venture: so stretch out their lean hands
from upper windows, and howl; others, come flocking about us, fighting
and jostling one another, and demanding, incessantly, charity for the
love of God, charity for the love of the Blessed Virgin, charity for
the love of all the Saints. A group of miserable children, almost
naked, screaming forth the same petition, discover that they can see
themselves reflected in the varnish of the carriage, and begin to dance
and make grimaces, that they may have the pleasure of seeing their antics
repeated in this mirror. A crippled idiot, in the act of striking
one of them who drowns his clamorous demand for charity, observes his
angry counterpart in the panel, stops short, and thrusting out his tongue,
begins to wag his head and chatter. The shrill cry raised at this,
awakens half-a-dozen wild creatures wrapped in frowsy brown cloaks,
who are lying on the church-steps with pots and pans for sale.
These, scrambling up, approach, and beg defiantly. ‘I am
hungry. Give me something. Listen to me, Signor. I
am hungry!’ Then, a ghastly old woman, fearful of being
too late, comes hobbling down the street, stretching out one hand, and
scratching herself all the way with the other, and screaming, long before
she can be heard, ‘Charity, charity! I’ll go and pray
for you directly, beautiful lady, if you’ll give me charity!’
Lastly, the members of a brotherhood for burying the dead: hideously
masked, and attired in shabby black robes, white at the skirts, with
the splashes of many muddy winters: escorted by a dirty priest, and
a congenial cross-bearer: come hurrying past. Surrounded by this
motley concourse, we move out of Fondi: bad bright eyes glaring at us,
out of the darkness of every crazy tenement, like glistening fragments
of its filth and putrefaction.
A noble mountain-pass, with the ruins of a fort on a strong eminence,
traditionally called the Fort of Fra Diavolo; the old town of Itrí,
like a device in pastry, built up, almost perpendicularly, on a hill,
and approached by long steep flights of steps; beautiful Mola di Gaëta,
whose wines, like those of Albano, have degenerated since the days of
Horace, or his taste for wine was bad: which is not likely of one who
enjoyed it so much, and extolled it so well; another night upon the
road at St. Agatha; a rest next day at Capua, which is picturesque,
but hardly so seductive to a traveller now, as the soldiers of Praetorian
Rome were wont to find the ancient city of that name; a flat road among
vines festooned and looped from tree to tree; and Mount Vesuvius close
at hand at last! - its cone and summit whitened with snow; and its smoke
hanging over it, in the heavy atmosphere of the day, like a dense cloud.
So we go, rattling down hill, into Naples.
A funeral is coming up the street, towards us. The body, on an
open bier, borne on a kind of palanquin, covered with a gay cloth of
crimson and gold. The mourners, in white gowns and masks.
If there be death abroad, life is well represented too, for all Naples
would seem to be out of doors, and tearing to and fro in carriages.
Some of these, the common Vetturíno vehicles, are drawn by three
horses abreast, decked with smart trappings and great abundance of brazen
ornament, and always going very fast. Not that their loads are
light; for the smallest of them has at least six people inside, four
in front, four or five more hanging on behind, and two or three more,
in a net or bag below the axle-tree, where they lie half-suffocated
with mud and dust. Exhibitors of Punch, buffo singers with guitars,
reciters of poetry, reciters of stories, a row of cheap exhibitions
with clowns and showmen, drums, and trumpets, painted cloths representing
the wonders within, and admiring crowds assembled without, assist the
whirl and bustle. Ragged lazzaroni lie asleep in doorways, archways,
and kennels; the gentry, gaily dressed, are dashing up and down in carriages
on the Chiaji, or walking in the Public Gardens; and quiet letter-writers,
perched behind their little desks and inkstands under the Portico of
the Great Theatre of San Carlo, in the public street, are waiting for
clients.
Here is a galley-slave in chains, who wants a letter written to a friend.
He approaches a clerkly-looking man, sitting under the corner arch,
and makes his bargain. He has obtained permission of the sentinel
who guards him: who stands near, leaning against the wall and cracking
nuts. The galley-slave dictates in the ear of the letter-writer,
what he desires to say; and as he can’t read writing, looks intently
in his face, to read there whether he sets down faithfully what he is
told. After a time, the galley-slave becomes discursive - incoherent.
The secretary pauses and rubs his chin. The galley-slave is voluble
and energetic. The secretary, at length, catches the idea, and
with the air of a man who knows how to word it, sets it down; stopping,
now and then, to glance back at his text admiringly. The galley-slave
is silent. The soldier stoically cracks his nuts. Is there
anything more to say? inquires the letter-writer. No more.
Then listen, friend of mine. He reads it through. The galley-slave
is quite enchanted. It is folded, and addressed, and given to
him, and he pays the fee. The secretary falls back indolently
in his chair, and takes a book. The galley-slave gathers up an
empty sack. The sentinel throws away a handful of nut-shells,
shoulders his musket, and away they go together.
Why do the beggars rap their chins constantly, with their right hands,
when you look at them? Everything is done in pantomime in Naples,
and that is the conventional sign for hunger. A man who is quarrelling
with another, yonder, lays the palm of his right hand on the back of
his left, and shakes the two thumbs - expressive of a donkey’s
ears - whereat his adversary is goaded to desperation. Two people
bargaining for fish, the buyer empties an imaginary waistcoat pocket
when he is told the price, and walks away without a word: having thoroughly
conveyed to the seller that he considers it too dear. Two people
in carriages, meeting, one touches his lips, twice or thrice, holding
up the five fingers of his right hand, and gives a horizontal cut in
the air with the palm. The other nods briskly, and goes his way.
He has been invited to a friendly dinner at half-past five o’clock,
and will certainly come.
All over Italy, a peculiar shake of the right hand from the wrist, with
the forefinger stretched out, expresses a negative - the only negative
beggars will ever understand. But, in Naples, those five fingers
are a copious language.
All this, and every other kind of out-door life and stir, and macaroni-eating
at sunset, and flower-selling all day long, and begging and stealing
everywhere and at all hours, you see upon the bright sea-shore, where
the waves of the bay sparkle merrily. But, lovers and hunters
of the picturesque, let us not keep too studiously out of view the miserable
depravity, degradation, and wretchedness, with which this gay Neapolitan
life is inseparably associated! It is not well to find Saint Giles’s
so repulsive, and the Porta Capuana so attractive. A pair of naked
legs and a ragged red scarf, do not make all the difference between
what is interesting and what is coarse and odious? Painting and
poetising for ever, if you will, the beauties of this most beautiful
and lovely spot of earth, let us, as our duty, try to associate a new
picturesque with some faint recognition of man’s destiny and capabilities;
more hopeful, I believe, among the ice and snow of the North Pole, than
in the sun and bloom of Naples.
Capri - once made odious by the deified beast Tiberius - Ischia, Procida,
and the thousand distant beauties of the Bay, lie in the blue sea yonder,
changing in the mist and sunshine twenty times a-day: now close at hand,
now far off, now unseen. The fairest country in the world, is
spread about us. Whether we turn towards the Miseno shore of the
splendid watery amphitheatre, and go by the Grotto of Posilipo to the
Grotto del Cane and away to Baiae: or take the other way, towards Vesuvius
and Sorrento, it is one succession of delights. In the last-named
direction, where, over doors and archways, there are countless little
images of San Gennaro, with his Canute’s hand stretched out, to
check the fury of the Burning Mountain, we are carried pleasantly, by
a railroad on the beautiful Sea Beach, past the town of Torre del Greco,
built upon the ashes of the former town destroyed by an eruption of
Vesuvius, within a hundred years; and past the flat-roofed houses, granaries,
and macaroni manufactories; to Castel-a-Mare, with its ruined castle,
now inhabited by fishermen, standing in the sea upon a heap of rocks.
Here, the railroad terminates; but, hence we may ride on, by an unbroken
succession of enchanting bays, and beautiful scenery, sloping from the
highest summit of Saint Angelo, the highest neighbouring mountain, down
to the water’s edge - among vineyards, olive-trees, gardens of
oranges and lemons, orchards, heaped-up rocks, green gorges in the hills
- and by the bases of snow-covered heights, and through small towns
with handsome, dark-haired women at the doors - and pass delicious summer
villas - to Sorrento, where the Poet Tasso drew his inspiration from
the beauty surrounding him. Returning, we may climb the heights
above Castel-a-Mare, and looking down among the boughs and leaves, see
the crisp water glistening in the sun; and clusters of white houses
in distant Naples, dwindling, in the great extent of prospect, down
to dice. The coming back to the city, by the beach again, at sunset:
with the glowing sea on one side, and the darkening mountain, with its
smoke and flame, upon the other: is a sublime conclusion to the glory
of the day.
That church by the Porta Capuana - near the old fisher-market in the
dirtiest quarter of dirty Naples, where the revolt of Masaniello began
- is memorable for having been the scene of one of his earliest proclamations
to the people, and is particularly remarkable for nothing else, unless
it be its waxen and bejewelled Saint in a glass case, with two odd hands;
or the enormous number of beggars who are constantly rapping their chins
there, like a battery of castanets. The cathedral with the beautiful
door, and the columns of African and Egyptian granite that once ornamented
the temple of Apollo, contains the famous sacred blood of San Gennaro
or Januarius: which is preserved in two phials in a silver tabernacle,
and miraculously liquefies three times a-year, to the great admiration
of the people. At the same moment, the stone (distant some miles)
where the Saint suffered martyrdom, becomes faintly red. It is
said that the officiating priests turn faintly red also, sometimes,
when these miracles occur.
The old, old men who live in hovels at the entrance of these ancient
catacombs, and who, in their age and infirmity, seem waiting here, to
be buried themselves, are members of a curious body, called the Royal
Hospital, who are the official attendants at funerals. Two of
these old spectres totter away, with lighted tapers, to show the caverns
of death - as unconcerned as if they were immortal. They were
used as burying-places for three hundred years; and, in one part, is
a large pit full of skulls and bones, said to be the sad remains of
a great mortality occasioned by a plague. In the rest there is
nothing but dust. They consist, chiefly, of great wide corridors
and labyrinths, hewn out of the rock. At the end of some of these
long passages, are unexpected glimpses of the daylight, shining down
from above. It looks as ghastly and as strange; among the torches,
and the dust, and the dark vaults: as if it, too, were dead and buried.
The present burial-place lies out yonder, on a hill between the city
and Vesuvius. The old Campo Santo with its three hundred and sixty-five
pits, is only used for those who die in hospitals, and prisons, and
are unclaimed by their friends. The graceful new cemetery, at
no great distance from it, though yet unfinished, has already many graves
among its shrubs and flowers, and airy colonnades. It might be
reasonably objected elsewhere, that some of the tombs are meretricious
and too fanciful; but the general brightness seems to justify it here;
and Mount Vesuvius, separated from them by a lovely slope of ground,
exalts and saddens the scene.
If it be solemn to behold from this new City of the Dead, with its dark
smoke hanging in the clear sky, how much more awful and impressive is
it, viewed from the ghostly ruins of Herculaneum and Pompeii!
Stand at the bottom of the great market-place of Pompeii, and look up
the silent streets, through the ruined temples of Jupiter and Isis,
over the broken houses with their inmost sanctuaries open to the day,
away to Mount Vesuvius, bright and snowy in the peaceful distance; and
lose all count of time, and heed of other things, in the strange and
melancholy sensation of seeing the Destroyed and the Destroyer making
this quiet picture in the sun. Then, ramble on, and see, at every
turn, the little familiar tokens of human habitation and every-day pursuits;
the chafing of the bucket-rope in the stone rim of the exhausted well;
the track of carriage-wheels in the pavement of the street; the marks
of drinking-vessels on the stone counter of the wine-shop; the amphorae
in private cellars, stored away so many hundred years ago, and undisturbed
to this hour - all rendering the solitude and deadly lonesomeness of
the place, ten thousand times more solemn, than if the volcano, in its
fury, had swept the city from the earth, and sunk it in the bottom of
the sea.
After it was shaken by the earthquake which preceded the eruption, workmen
were employed in shaping out, in stone, new ornaments for temples and
other buildings that had suffered. Here lies their work, outside
the city gate, as if they would return to-morrow.
In the cellar of Diomede’s house, where certain skeletons were
found huddled together, close to the door, the impression of their bodies
on the ashes, hardened with the ashes, and became stamped and fixed
there, after they had shrunk, inside, to scanty bones. So, in
the theatre of Herculaneum, a comic mask, floating on the stream when
it was hot and liquid, stamped its mimic features in it as it hardened
into stone; and now, it turns upon the stranger the fantastic look it
turned upon the audiences in that same theatre two thousand years ago.
Next to the wonder of going up and down the streets, and in and out
of the houses, and traversing the secret chambers of the temples of
a religion that has vanished from the earth, and finding so many fresh
traces of remote antiquity: as if the course of Time had been stopped
after this desolation, and there had been no nights and days, months,
years, and centuries, since: nothing is more impressive and terrible
than the many evidences of the searching nature of the ashes, as bespeaking
their irresistible power, and the impossibility of escaping them.
In the wine-cellars, they forced their way into the earthen vessels:
displacing the wine and choking them, to the brim, with dust.
In the tombs, they forced the ashes of the dead from the funeral urns,
and rained new ruin even into them. The mouths, and eyes, and
skulls of all the skeletons, were stuffed with this terrible hail.
In Herculaneum, where the flood was of a different and a heavier kind,
it rolled in, like a sea. Imagine a deluge of water turned to
marble, at its height - and that is what is called ‘the lava’
here.
Some workmen were digging the gloomy well on the brink of which we now
stand, looking down, when they came on some of the stone benches of
the theatre - those steps (for such they seem) at the bottom of the
excavation - and found the buried city of Herculaneum. Presently
going down, with lighted torches, we are perplexed by great walls of
monstrous thickness, rising up between the benches, shutting out the
stage, obtruding their shapeless forms in absurd places, confusing the
whole plan, and making it a disordered dream. We cannot, at first,
believe, or picture to ourselves, that THIS came rolling in, and drowned
the city; and that all that is not here, has been cut away, by the axe,
like solid stone. But this perceived and understood, the horror
and oppression of its presence are indescribable.
Many of the paintings on the walls in the roofless chambers of both
cities, or carefully removed to the museum at Naples, are as fresh and
plain, as if they had been executed yesterday. Here are subjects
of still life, as provisions, dead game, bottles, glasses, and the like;
familiar classical stories, or mythological fables, always forcibly
and plainly told; conceits of cupids, quarrelling, sporting, working
at trades; theatrical rehearsals; poets reading their productions to
their friends; inscriptions chalked upon the walls; political squibs,
advertisements, rough drawings by schoolboys; everything to people and
restore the ancient cities, in the fancy of their wondering visitor.
Furniture, too, you see, of every kind - lamps, tables, couches; vessels
for eating, drinking, and cooking; workmen’s tools, surgical instruments,
tickets for the theatre, pieces of money, personal ornaments, bunches
of keys found clenched in the grasp of skeletons, helmets of guards
and warriors; little household bells, yet musical with their old domestic
tones.
The least among these objects, lends its aid to swell the interest of
Vesuvius, and invest it with a perfect fascination. The looking,
from either ruined city, into the neighbouring grounds overgrown with
beautiful vines and luxuriant trees; and remembering that house upon
house, temple on temple, building after building, and street after street,
are still lying underneath the roots of all the quiet cultivation, waiting
to be turned up to the light of day; is something so wonderful, so full
of mystery, so captivating to the imagination, that one would think
it would be paramount, and yield to nothing else. To nothing but
Vesuvius; but the mountain is the genius of the scene. From every
indication of the ruin it has worked, we look, again, with an absorbing
interest to where its smoke is rising up into the sky. It is beyond
us, as we thread the ruined streets: above us, as we stand upon the
ruined walls, we follow it through every vista of broken columns, as
we wander through the empty court-yards of the houses; and through the
garlandings and interlacings of every wanton vine. Turning away
to Paestum yonder, to see the awful structures built, the least aged
of them, hundreds of years before the birth of Christ, and standing
yet, erect in lonely majesty, upon the wild, malaria-blighted plain
- we watch Vesuvius as it disappears from the prospect, and watch for
it again, on our return, with the same thrill of interest: as the doom
and destiny of all this beautiful country, biding its terrible time.
It is very warm in the sun, on this early spring-day, when we return
from Paestum, but very cold in the shade: insomuch, that although we
may lunch, pleasantly, at noon, in the open air, by the gate of Pompeii,
the neighbouring rivulet supplies thick ice for our wine. But,
the sun is shining brightly; there is not a cloud or speck of vapour
in the whole blue sky, looking down upon the bay of Naples; and the
moon will be at the full to-night. No matter that the snow and
ice lie thick upon the summit of Vesuvius, or that we have been on foot
all day at Pompeii, or that croakers maintain that strangers should
not be on the mountain by night, in such an unusual season. Let
us take advantage of the fine weather; make the best of our way to Resina,
the little village at the foot of the mountain; prepare ourselves, as
well as we can, on so short a notice, at the guide’s house; ascend
at once, and have sunset half-way up, moonlight at the top, and midnight
to come down in!
At four o’clock in the afternoon, there is a terrible uproar in
the little stable-yard of Signior Salvatore, the recognised head-guide,
with the gold band round his cap; and thirty under-guides who are all
scuffling and screaming at once, are preparing half-a-dozen saddled
ponies, three litters, and some stout staves, for the journey.
Every one of the thirty, quarrels with the other twenty-nine, and frightens
the six ponies; and as much of the village as can possibly squeeze itself
into the little stable-yard, participates in the tumult, and gets trodden
on by the cattle.
After much violent skirmishing, and more noise than would suffice for
the storming of Naples, the procession starts. The head-guide,
who is liberally paid for all the attendants, rides a little in advance
of the party; the other thirty guides proceed on foot. Eight go
forward with the litters that are to be used by-and-by; and the remaining
two-and-twenty beg.
We ascend, gradually, by stony lanes like rough broad flights of stairs,
for some time. At length, we leave these, and the vineyards on
either side of them, and emerge upon a bleak bare region where the lava
lies confusedly, in enormous rusty masses; as if the earth had been
ploughed up by burning thunderbolts. And now, we halt to see the
sun set. The change that falls upon the dreary region, and on
the whole mountain, as its red light fades, and the night comes on -
and the unutterable solemnity and dreariness that reign around, who
that has witnessed it, can ever forget!
It is dark, when after winding, for some time, over the broken ground,
we arrive at the foot of the cone: which is extremely steep, and seems
to rise, almost perpendicularly, from the spot where we dismount.
The only light is reflected from the snow, deep, hard, and white, with
which the cone is covered. It is now intensely cold, and the air
is piercing. The thirty-one have brought no torches, knowing that
the moon will rise before we reach the top. Two of the litters
are devoted to the two ladies; the third, to a rather heavy gentleman
from Naples, whose hospitality and good-nature have attached him to
the expedition, and determined him to assist in doing the honours of
the mountain. The rather heavy gentleman is carried by fifteen
men; each of the ladies by half-a-dozen. We who walk, make the
best use of our staves; and so the whole party begin to labour upward
over the snow, - as if they were toiling to the summit of an antediluvian
Twelfth-cake.
We are a long time toiling up; and the head-guide looks oddly about
him when one of the company - not an Italian, though an habitué
of the mountain for many years: whom we will call, for our present purpose,
Mr. Pickle of Portici - suggests that, as it is freezing hard, and the
usual footing of ashes is covered by the snow and ice, it will surely
be difficult to descend. But the sight of the litters above, tilting
up and down, and jerking from this side to that, as the bearers continually
slip and tumble, diverts our attention; more especially as the whole
length of the rather heavy gentleman is, at that moment, presented to
us alarmingly foreshortened, with his head downwards.
The rising of the moon soon afterwards, revives the flagging spirits
of the bearers. Stimulating each other with their usual watchword,
‘Courage, friend! It is to eat macaroni!’ they press
on, gallantly, for the summit.
From tingeing the top of the snow above us, with a band of light, and
pouring it in a stream through the valley below, while we have been
ascending in the dark, the moon soon lights the whole white mountain-side,
and the broad sea down below, and tiny Naples in the distance, and every
village in the country round. The whole prospect is in this lovely
state, when we come upon the platform on the mountain-top - the region
of Fire - an exhausted crater formed of great masses of gigantic cinders,
like blocks of stone from some tremendous waterfall, burnt up; from
every chink and crevice of which, hot, sulphurous smoke is pouring out:
while, from another conical-shaped hill, the present crater, rising
abruptly from this platform at the end, great sheets of fire are streaming
forth: reddening the night with flame, blackening it with smoke, and
spotting it with red-hot stones and cinders, that fly up into the air
like feathers, and fall down like lead. What words can paint the
gloom and grandeur of this scene!
The broken ground; the smoke; the sense of suffocation from the sulphur:
the fear of falling down through the crevices in the yawning ground;
the stopping, every now and then, for somebody who is missing in the
dark (for the dense smoke now obscures the moon); the intolerable noise
of the thirty; and the hoarse roaring of the mountain; make it a scene
of such confusion, at the same time, that we reel again. But,
dragging the ladies through it, and across another exhausted crater
to the foot of the present Volcano, we approach close to it on the windy
side, and then sit down among the hot ashes at its foot, and look up
in silence; faintly estimating the action that is going on within, from
its being full a hundred feet higher, at this minute, than it was six
weeks ago.
There is something in the fire and roar, that generates an irresistible
desire to get nearer to it. We cannot rest long, without starting
off, two of us, on our hands and knees, accompanied by the head-guide,
to climb to the brim of the flaming crater, and try to look in.
Meanwhile, the thirty yell, as with one voice, that it is a dangerous
proceeding, and call to us to come back; frightening the rest of the
party out of their wits.
What with their noise, and what with the trembling of the thin crust
of ground, that seems about to open underneath our feet and plunge us
in the burning gulf below (which is the real danger, if there be any);
and what with the flashing of the fire in our faces, and the shower
of red-hot ashes that is raining down, and the choking smoke and sulphur;
we may well feel giddy and irrational, like drunken men. But,
we contrive to climb up to the brim, and look down, for a moment, into
the Hell of boiling fire below. Then, we all three come rolling
down; blackened, and singed, and scorched, and hot, and giddy: and each
with his dress alight in half-a-dozen places.
You have read, a thousand times, that the usual way of descending, is,
by sliding down the ashes: which, forming a gradually-increasing ledge
below the feet, prevent too rapid a descent. But, when we have
crossed the two exhausted craters on our way back and are come to this
precipitous place, there is (as Mr. Pickle has foretold) no vestige
of ashes to be seen; the whole being a smooth sheet of ice.
In this dilemma, ten or a dozen of the guides cautiously join hands,
and make a chain of men; of whom the foremost beat, as well as they
can, a rough track with their sticks, down which we prepare to follow.
The way being fearfully steep, and none of the party: even of the thirty:
being able to keep their feet for six paces together, the ladies are
taken out of their litters, and placed, each between two careful persons;
while others of the thirty hold by their skirts, to prevent their falling
forward - a necessary precaution, tending to the immediate and hopeless
dilapidation of their apparel. The rather heavy gentleman is abjured
to leave his litter too, and be escorted in a similar manner; but he
resolves to be brought down as he was brought up, on the principle that
his fifteen bearers are not likely to tumble all at once, and that he
is safer so, than trusting to his own legs.
In this order, we begin the descent: sometimes on foot, sometimes shuffling
on the ice: always proceeding much more quietly and slowly, than on
our upward way: and constantly alarmed by the falling among us of somebody
from behind, who endangers the footing of the whole party, and clings
pertinaciously to anybody’s ankles. It is impossible for
the litter to be in advance, too, as the track has to be made; and its
appearance behind us, overhead - with some one or other of the bearers
always down, and the rather heavy gentleman with his legs always in
the air - is very threatening and frightful. We have gone on thus,
a very little way, painfully and anxiously, but quite merrily, and regarding
it as a great success - and have all fallen several times, and have
all been stopped, somehow or other, as we were sliding away - when Mr.
Pickle of Portici, in the act of remarking on these uncommon circumstances
as quite beyond his experience, stumbles, falls, disengages himself,
with quick presence of mind, from those about him, plunges away head
foremost, and rolls, over and over, down the whole surface of the cone!
Sickening as it is to look, and be so powerless to help him, I see him
there, in the moonlight - I have had such a dream often - skimming over
the white ice, like a cannon-ball. Almost at the same moment,
there is a cry from behind; and a man who has carried a light basket
of spare cloaks on his head, comes rolling past, at the same frightful
speed, closely followed by a boy. At this climax of the chapter
of accidents, the remaining eight-and-twenty vociferate to that degree,
that a pack of wolves would be music to them!
Giddy, and bloody, and a mere bundle of rags, is Pickle of Portici when
we reach the place where we dismounted, and where the horses are waiting;
but, thank God, sound in limb! And never are we likely to be more
glad to see a man alive and on his feet, than to see him now - making
light of it too, though sorely bruised and in great pain. The
boy is brought into the Hermitage on the Mountain, while we are at supper,
with his head tied up; and the man is heard of, some hours afterwards.
He too is bruised and stunned, but has broken no bones; the snow having,
fortunately, covered all the larger blocks of rock and stone, and rendered
them harmless.
After a cheerful meal, and a good rest before a blazing fire, we again
take horse, and continue our descent to Salvatore’s house - very
slowly, by reason of our bruised friend being hardly able to keep the
saddle, or endure the pain of motion. Though it is so late at
night, or early in the morning, all the people of the village are waiting
about the little stable-yard when we arrive, and looking up the road
by which we are expected. Our appearance is hailed with a great
clamour of tongues, and a general sensation for which in our modesty
we are somewhat at a loss to account, until, turning into the yard,
we find that one of a party of French gentlemen who were on the mountain
at the same time is lying on some straw in the stable, with a broken
limb: looking like Death, and suffering great torture; and that we were
confidently supposed to have encountered some worse accident.
So ‘well returned, and Heaven be praised!’ as the cheerful
Vetturíno, who has borne us company all the way from Pisa, says,
with all his heart! And away with his ready horses, into sleeping
Naples!
It wakes again to Policinelli and pickpockets, buffo singers and beggars,
rags, puppets, flowers, brightness, dirt, and universal degradation;
airing its Harlequin suit in the sunshine, next day and every day; singing,
starving, dancing, gaming, on the sea-shore; and leaving all labour
to the burning mountain, which is ever at its work.
Our English dilettanti would be very pathetic on the subject of the
national taste, if they could hear an Italian opera half as badly sung
in England as we may hear the Foscari performed, to-night, in the splendid
theatre of San Carlo. But, for astonishing truth and spirit in
seizing and embodying the real life about it, the shabby little San
Carlino Theatre - the rickety house one story high, with a staring picture
outside: down among the drums and trumpets, and the tumblers, and the
lady conjurer - is without a rival anywhere.
There is one extraordinary feature in the real life of Naples, at which
we may take a glance before we go - the Lotteries.
They prevail in most parts of Italy, but are particularly obvious, in
their effects and influences, here. They are drawn every Saturday.
They bring an immense revenue to the Government; and diffuse a taste
for gambling among the poorest of the poor, which is very comfortable
to the coffers of the State, and very ruinous to themselves. The
lowest stake is one grain; less than a farthing. One hundred numbers
- from one to a hundred, inclusive - are put into a box. Five
are drawn. Those are the prizes. I buy three numbers.
If one of them come up, I win a small prize. If two, some hundreds
of times my stake. If three, three thousand five hundred times
my stake. I stake (or play as they call it) what I can upon my
numbers, and buy what numbers I please. The amount I play, I pay
at the lottery office, where I purchase the ticket; and it is stated
on the ticket itself.
Every lottery office keeps a printed book, an Universal Lottery Diviner,
where every possible accident and circumstance is provided for, and
has a number against it. For instance, let us take two carlini
- about sevenpence. On our way to the lottery office, we run against
a black man. When we get there, we say gravely, ‘The Diviner.’
It is handed over the counter, as a serious matter of business.
We look at black man. Such a number. ‘Give us that.’
We look at running against a person in the street. ‘Give
us that. ’ We look at the name of the street itself. ‘Give
us that.’ Now, we have our three numbers.
If the roof of the theatre of San Carlo were to fall in, so many people
would play upon the numbers attached to such an accident in the Diviner,
that the Government would soon close those numbers, and decline to run
the risk of losing any more upon them. This often happens.
Not long ago, when there was a fire in the King’s Palace, there
was such a desperate run on fire, and king, and palace, that further
stakes on the numbers attached to those words in the Golden Book were
forbidden. Every accident or event, is supposed, by the ignorant
populace, to be a revelation to the beholder, or party concerned, in
connection with the lottery. Certain people who have a talent
for dreaming fortunately, are much sought after; and there are some
priests who are constantly favoured with visions of the lucky numbers.
I heard of a horse running away with a man, and dashing him down, dead,
at the corner of a street. Pursuing the horse with incredible
speed, was another man, who ran so fast, that he came up, immediately
after the accident. He threw himself upon his knees beside the
unfortunate rider, and clasped his hand with an expression of the wildest
grief. ‘If you have life,’ he said, ‘speak one
word to me! If you have one gasp of breath left, mention your
age for Heaven’s sake, that I may play that number in the lottery.’
It is four o’clock in the afternoon, and we may go to see our
lottery drawn. The ceremony takes place every Saturday, in the
Tribunale, or Court of Justice - this singular, earthy-smelling room,
or gallery, as mouldy as an old cellar, and as damp as a dungeon.
At the upper end is a platform, with a large horse-shoe table upon it;
and a President and Council sitting round - all judges of the Law.
The man on the little stool behind the President, is the Capo Lazzarone,
a kind of tribune of the people, appointed on their behalf to see that
all is fairly conducted: attended by a few personal friends. A
ragged, swarthy fellow he is: with long matted hair hanging down all
over his face: and covered, from head to foot, with most unquestionably
genuine dirt. All the body of the room is filled with the commonest
of the Neapolitan people: and between them and the platform, guarding
the steps leading to the latter, is a small body of soldiers.
There is some delay in the arrival of the necessary number of judges;
during which, the box, in which the numbers are being placed, is a source
of the deepest interest. When the box is full, the boy who is
to draw the numbers out of it becomes the prominent feature of the proceedings.
He is already dressed for his part, in a tight brown Holland coat, with
only one (the left) sleeve to it, which leaves his right arm bared to
the shoulder, ready for plunging down into the mysterious chest.
During the hush and whisper that pervade the room, all eyes are turned
on this young minister of fortune. People begin to inquire his
age, with a view to the next lottery; and the number of his brothers
and sisters; and the age of his father and mother; and whether he has
any moles or pimples upon him; and where, and how many; when the arrival
of the last judge but one (a little old man, universally dreaded as
possessing the Evil Eye) makes a slight diversion, and would occasion
a greater one, but that he is immediately deposed, as a source of interest,
by the officiating priest, who advances gravely to his place, followed
by a very dirty little boy, carrying his sacred vestments, and a pot
of Holy Water.
Here is the last judge come at last, and now he takes his place at the
horse-shoe table.
There is a murmur of irrepressible agitation. In the midst of
it, the priest puts his head into the sacred vestments, and pulls the
same over his shoulders. Then he says a silent prayer; and dipping
a brush into the pot of Holy Water, sprinkles it over the box - and
over the boy, and gives them a double-barrelled blessing, which the
box and the boy are both hoisted on the table to receive. The
boy remaining on the table, the box is now carried round the front of
the platform, by an attendant, who holds it up and shakes it lustily
all the time; seeming to say, like the conjurer, ‘There is no
deception, ladies and gentlemen; keep your eyes upon me, if you please!’
At last, the box is set before the boy; and the boy, first holding up
his naked arm and open hand, dives down into the hole (it is made like
a ballot-box) and pulls out a number, which is rolled up, round something
hard, like a bonbon. This he hands to the judge next him, who
unrolls a little bit, and hands it to the President, next to whom he
sits. The President unrolls it, very slowly. The Capo Lazzarone
leans over his shoulder. The President holds it up, unrolled,
to the Capo Lazzarone. The Capo Lazzarone, looking at it eagerly,
cries out, in a shrill, loud voice, ‘Sessantadue!’ (sixty-two),
expressing the two upon his fingers, as he calls it out. Alas!
the Capo Lazzarone himself has not staked on sixty-two. His face
is very long, and his eyes roll wildly.
As it happens to be a favourite number, however, it is pretty well received,
which is not always the case. They are all drawn with the same
ceremony, omitting the blessing. One blessing is enough for the
whole multiplication-table. The only new incident in the proceedings,
is the gradually deepening intensity of the change in the Cape Lazzarone,
who has, evidently, speculated to the very utmost extent of his means;
and who, when he sees the last number, and finds that it is not one
of his, clasps his hands, and raises his eyes to the ceiling before
proclaiming it, as though remonstrating, in a secret agony, with his
patron saint, for having committed so gross a breach of confidence.
I hope the Capo Lazzarone may not desert him for some other member of
the Calendar, but he seems to threaten it.
Where the winners may be, nobody knows. They certainly are not
present; the general disappointment filling one with pity for the poor
people. They look: when we stand aside, observing them, in their
passage through the court-yard down below: as miserable as the prisoners
in the gaol (it forms a part of the building), who are peeping down
upon them, from between their bars; or, as the fragments of human heads
which are still dangling in chains outside, in memory of the good old
times, when their owners were strung up there, for the popular edification.
Away from Naples in a glorious sunrise, by the road to Capua, and then
on a three days’ journey along by-roads, that we may see, on the
way, the monastery of Monte Cassino, which is perched on the steep and
lofty hill above the little town of San Germano, and is lost on a misty
morning in the clouds.
So much the better, for the deep sounding of its bell, which, as we
go winding up, on mules, towards the convent, is heard mysteriously
in the still air, while nothing is seen but the grey mist, moving solemnly
and slowly, like a funeral procession. Behold, at length the shadowy
pile of building close before us: its grey walls and towers dimly seen,
though so near and so vast: and the raw vapour rolling through its cloisters
heavily.
There are two black shadows walking to and fro in the quadrangle, near
the statues of the Patron Saint and his sister; and hopping on behind
them, in and out of the old arches, is a raven, croaking in answer to
the bell, and uttering, at intervals, the purest Tuscan. How like
a Jesuit he looks! There never was a sly and stealthy fellow so
at home as is this raven, standing now at the refectory door, with his
head on one side, and pretending to glance another way, while he is
scrutinizing the visitors keenly, and listening with fixed attention.
What a dull-headed monk the porter becomes in comparison!
‘He speaks like us!’ says the porter: ‘quite as plainly.’
Quite as plainly, Porter. Nothing could be more expressive than
his reception of the peasants who are entering the gate with baskets
and burdens. There is a roll in his eye, and a chuckle in his
throat, which should qualify him to be chosen Superior of an Order of
Ravens. He knows all about it. ‘It’s all right,’
he says. ‘We know what we know. Come along, good people.
Glad to see you!’ How was this extraordinary structure ever
built in such a situation, where the labour of conveying the stone,
and iron, and marble, so great a height, must have been prodigious?
‘Caw!’ says the raven, welcoming the peasants. How,
being despoiled by plunder, fire and earthquake, has it risen from its
ruins, and been again made what we now see it, with its church so sumptuous
and magnificent? ‘Caw!’ says the raven, welcoming
the peasants. These people have a miserable appearance, and (as
usual) are densely ignorant, and all beg, while the monks are chaunting
in the chapel. ‘Caw!’ says the raven, ‘Cuckoo!’
So we leave him, chuckling and rolling his eye at the convent gate,
and wind slowly down again through the cloud. At last emerging
from it, we come in sight of the village far below, and the flat green
country intersected by rivulets; which is pleasant and fresh to see
after the obscurity and haze of the convent - no disrespect to the raven,
or the holy friars.
Away we go again, by muddy roads, and through the most shattered and
tattered of villages, where there is not a whole window among all the
houses, or a whole garment among all the peasants, or the least appearance
of anything to eat, in any of the wretched hucksters’ shops.
The women wear a bright red bodice laced before and behind, a white
skirt, and the Neapolitan head-dress of square folds of linen, primitively
meant to carry loads on. The men and children wear anything they
can get. The soldiers are as dirty and rapacious as the dogs.
The inns are such hobgoblin places, that they are infinitely more attractive
and amusing than the best hotels in Paris. Here is one near Valmontone
(that is Valmontone the round, walled town on the mount opposite), which
is approached by a quagmire almost knee-deep. There is a wild
colonnade below, and a dark yard full of empty stables and lofts, and
a great long kitchen with a great long bench and a great long form,
where a party of travellers, with two priests among them, are crowding
round the fire while their supper is cooking. Above stairs, is
a rough brick gallery to sit in, with very little windows with very
small patches of knotty glass in them, and all the doors that open from
it (a dozen or two) off their hinges, and a bare board on tressels for
a table, at which thirty people might dine easily, and a fireplace large
enough in itself for a breakfast-parlour, where, as the faggots blaze
and crackle, they illuminate the ugliest and grimmest of faces, drawn
in charcoal on the whitewashed chimney-sides by previous travellers.
There is a flaring country lamp on the table; and, hovering about it,
scratching her thick black hair continually, a yellow dwarf of a woman,
who stands on tiptoe to arrange the hatchet knives, and takes a flying
leap to look into the water-jug. The beds in the adjoining rooms
are of the liveliest kind. There is not a solitary scrap of looking-glass
in the house, and the washing apparatus is identical with the cooking
utensils. But the yellow dwarf sets on the table a good flask
of excellent wine, holding a quart at least; and produces, among half-a-dozen
other dishes, two-thirds of a roasted kid, smoking hot. She is
as good-humoured, too, as dirty, which is saying a great deal.
So here’s long life to her, in the flask of wine, and prosperity
to the establishment.
Rome gained and left behind, and with it the Pilgrims who are now repairing
to their own homes again - each with his scallop shell and staff, and
soliciting alms for the love of God - we come, by a fair country, to
the Falls of Terni, where the whole Velino river dashes, headlong, from
a rocky height, amidst shining spray and rainbows. Perugia, strongly
fortified by art and nature, on a lofty eminence, rising abruptly from
the plain where purple mountains mingle with the distant sky, is glowing,
on its market-day, with radiant colours. They set off its sombre
but rich Gothic buildings admirably. The pavement of its market-place
is strewn with country goods. All along the steep hill leading
from the town, under the town wall, there is a noisy fair of calves,
lambs, pigs, horses, mules, and oxen. Fowls, geese, and turkeys,
flutter vigorously among their very hoofs; and buyers, sellers, and
spectators, clustering everywhere, block up the road as we come shouting
down upon them.
Suddenly, there is a ringing sound among our horses. The driver
stops them. Sinking in his saddle, and casting up his eyes to
Heaven, he delivers this apostrophe, ‘Oh Jove Omnipotent! here
is a horse has lost his shoe!’
Notwithstanding the tremendous nature of this accident, and the utterly
forlorn look and gesture (impossible in any one but an Italian Vetturíno)
with which it is announced, it is not long in being repaired by a mortal
Farrier, by whose assistance we reach Castiglione the same night, and
Arezzo next day. Mass is, of course, performing in its fine cathedral,
where the sun shines in among the clustered pillars, through rich stained-glass
windows: half revealing, half concealing the kneeling figures on the
pavement, and striking out paths of spotted light in the long aisles.
But, how much beauty of another kind is here, when, on a fair clear
morning, we look, from the summit of a hill, on Florence! See
where it lies before us in a sun-lighted valley, bright with the winding
Arno, and shut in by swelling hills; its domes, and towers, and palaces,
rising from the rich country in a glittering heap, and shining in the
sun like gold!
Magnificently stern and sombre are the streets of beautiful Florence;
and the strong old piles of building make such heaps of shadow, on the
ground and in the river, that there is another and a different city
of rich forms and fancies, always lying at our feet. Prodigious
palaces, constructed for defence, with small distrustful windows heavily
barred, and walls of great thickness formed of huge masses of rough
stone, frown, in their old sulky state, on every street. In the
midst of the city - in the Piazza of the Grand Duke, adorned with beautiful
statues and the Fountain of Neptune - rises the Palazzo Vecchio, with
its enormous overhanging battlements, and the Great Tower that watches
over the whole town. In its court-yard - worthy of the Castle
of Otranto in its ponderous gloom - is a massive staircase that the
heaviest waggon and the stoutest team of horses might be driven up.
Within it, is a Great Saloon, faded and tarnished in its stately decorations,
and mouldering by grains, but recording yet, in pictures on its walls,
the triumphs of the Medici and the wars of the old Florentine people.
The prison is hard by, in an adjacent court-yard of the building - a
foul and dismal place, where some men are shut up close, in small cells
like ovens; and where others look through bars and beg; where some are
playing draughts, and some are talking to their friends, who smoke,
the while, to purify the air; and some are buying wine and fruit of
women-vendors; and all are squalid, dirty, and vile to look at.
‘They are merry enough, Signore,’ says the jailer.
‘They are all blood-stained here,’ he adds, indicating,
with his hand, three-fourths of the whole building. Before the
hour is out, an old man, eighty years of age, quarrelling over a bargain
with a young girl of seventeen, stabs her dead, in the market-place
full of bright flowers; and is brought in prisoner, to swell the number.
Among the four old bridges that span the river, the Ponte Vecchio -
that bridge which is covered with the shops of Jewellers and Goldsmiths
- is a most enchanting feature in the scene. The space of one
house, in the centre, being left open, the view beyond is shown as in
a frame; and that precious glimpse of sky, and water, and rich buildings,
shining so quietly among the huddled roofs and gables on the bridge,
is exquisite. Above it, the Gallery of the Grand Duke crosses
the river. It was built to connect the two Great Palaces by a
secret passage; and it takes its jealous course among the streets and
houses, with true despotism: going where it lists, and spurning every
obstacle away, before it.
The Grand Duke has a worthier secret passage through the streets, in
his black robe and hood, as a member of the Compagnia della Misericordia,
which brotherhood includes all ranks of men. If an accident take
place, their office is, to raise the sufferer, and bear him tenderly
to the Hospital. If a fire break out, it is one of their functions
to repair to the spot, and render their assistance and protection.
It is, also, among their commonest offices, to attend and console the
sick; and they neither receive money, nor eat, nor drink, in any house
they visit for this purpose. Those who are on duty for the time,
are all called together, on a moment’s notice, by the tolling
of the great bell of the Tower; and it is said that the Grand Duke has
been seen, at this sound, to rise from his seat at table, and quietly
withdraw to attend the summons.
In this other large Piazza, where an irregular kind of market is held,
and stores of old iron and other small merchandise are set out on stalls,
or scattered on the pavement, are grouped together, the Cathedral with
its great Dome, the beautiful Italian Gothic Tower the Campanile, and
the Baptistery with its wrought bronze doors. And here, a small
untrodden square in the pavement, is ‘the Stone of DANTE,’
where (so runs the story) he was used to bring his stool, and sit in
contemplation. I wonder was he ever, in his bitter exile, withheld
from cursing the very stones in the streets of Florence the ungrateful,
by any kind remembrance of this old musing-place, and its association
with gentle thoughts of little Beatrice!
The chapel of the Medici, the Good and Bad Angels, of Florence; the
church of Santa Croce where Michael Angelo lies buried, and where every
stone in the cloisters is eloquent on great men’s deaths; innumerable
churches, often masses of unfinished heavy brickwork externally, but
solemn and serene within; arrest our lingering steps, in strolling through
the city.
In keeping with the tombs among the cloisters, is the Museum of Natural
History, famous through the world for its preparations in wax; beginning
with models of leaves, seeds, plants, inferior animals; and gradually
ascending, through separate organs of the human frame, up to the whole
structure of that wonderful creation, exquisitely presented, as in recent
death. Few admonitions of our frail mortality can be more solemn
and more sad, or strike so home upon the heart, as the counterfeits
of Youth and Beauty that are lying there, upon their beds, in their
last sleep.
Beyond the walls, the whole sweet Valley of the Arno, the convent at
Fiesole, the Tower of Galileo, BOCCACCIO’S house, old villas and
retreats; innumerable spots of interest, all glowing in a landscape
of surpassing beauty steeped in the richest light; are spread before
us. Returning from so much brightness, how solemn and how grand
the streets again, with their great, dark, mournful palaces, and many
legends: not of siege, and war, and might, and Iron Hand alone, but
of the triumphant growth of peaceful Arts and Sciences.
What light is shed upon the world, at this day, from amidst these rugged
Palaces of Florence! Here, open to all comers, in their beautiful
and calm retreats, the ancient Sculptors are immortal, side by side
with Michael Angelo, Canova, Titian, Rembrandt, Raphael, Poets, Historians,
Philosophers - those illustrious men of history, beside whom its crowned
heads and harnessed warriors show so poor and small, and are so soon
forgotten. Here, the imperishable part of noble minds survives,
placid and equal, when strongholds of assault and defence are overthrown;
when the tyranny of the many, or the few, or both, is but a tale; when
Pride and Power are so much cloistered dust. The fire within the
stern streets, and among the massive Palaces and Towers, kindled by
rays from Heaven, is still burning brightly, when the flickering of
war is extinguished and the household fires of generations have decayed;
as thousands upon thousands of faces, rigid with the strife and passion
of the hour, have faded out of the old Squares and public haunts, while
the nameless Florentine Lady, preserved from oblivion by a Painter’s
hand, yet lives on, in enduring grace and youth.
Let us look back on Florence while we may, and when its shining Dome
is seen no more, go travelling through cheerful Tuscany, with a bright
remembrance of it; for Italy will be the fairer for the recollection.
The summer-time being come: and Genoa, and Milan, and the Lake of Como
lying far behind us: and we resting at Faido, a Swiss village, near
the awful rocks and mountains, the everlasting snows and roaring cataracts,
of the Great Saint Gothard: hearing the Italian tongue for the last
time on this journey: let us part from Italy, with all its miseries
and wrongs, affectionately, in our admiration of the beauties, natural
and artificial, of which it is full to overflowing, and in our tenderness
towards a people, naturally well-disposed, and patient, and sweet-tempered.
Years of neglect, oppression, and misrule, have been at work, to change
their nature and reduce their spirit; miserable jealousies, fomented
by petty Princes to whom union was destruction, and division strength,
have been a canker at their root of nationality, and have barbarized
their language; but the good that was in them ever, is in them yet,
and a noble people may be, one day, raised up from these ashes.
Let us entertain that hope! And let us not remember Italy the
less regardfully, because, in every fragment of her fallen Temples,
and every stone of her deserted palaces and prisons, she helps to inculcate
the lesson that the wheel of Time is rolling for an end, and that the
world is, in all great essentials, better, gentler, more forbearing,
and more hopeful, as it rolls!
Footnotes:
{1} This was
written in 1846.
{2} A far more
liberal and just recognition of the public has arisen in Westminster
Abbey since this was written.
*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK, PICTURES FROM ITALY ***
******This file should be named picit10h.htm or picit10h.zip****** Corrected EDITIONS of our EBooks get a new NUMBER, picit11h.htm VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, picit10ah.htm Project Gutenberg eBooks are often created from several printed editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the US unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we usually do not keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition. We are now trying to release all our eBooks one year in advance of the official release dates, leaving time for better editing. Please be encouraged to tell us about any error or corrections, even years after the official publication date. Please note neither this listing nor its contents are final til midnight of the last day of the month of any such announcement. The official release date of all Project Gutenberg eBooks is at Midnight, Central Time, of the last day of the stated month. A preliminary version may often be posted for suggestion, comment and editing by those who wish to do so. Most people start at our Web sites at: http://gutenberg.net or http://promo.net/pg These Web sites include award-winning information about Project Gutenberg, including how to donate, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to subscribe to our email newsletter (free!). Those of you who want to download any eBook before announcement can get to them as follows, and just download by date. This is also a good way to get them instantly upon announcement, as the indexes our cataloguers produce obviously take a while after an announcement goes out in the Project Gutenberg Newsletter. http://www.ibiblio.org/gutenberg/etext04 or ftp://ftp.ibiblio.org/pub/docs/books/gutenberg/etext04 Or /etext03, 02, 01, 00, 99, 98, 97, 96, 95, 94, 93, 92, 92, 91 or 90 Just search by the first five letters of the filename you want, as it appears in our Newsletters. Information about Project Gutenberg (one page) We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The time it takes us, a rather conservative estimate, is fifty hours to get any eBook selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. Our projected audience is one hundred million readers. If the value per text is nominally estimated at one dollar then we produce $2 million dollars per hour in 2002 as we release over 100 new text files per month: 1240 more eBooks in 2001 for a total of 4000+ We are already on our way to trying for 2000 more eBooks in 2002 If they reach just 1-2% of the world's population then the total will reach over half a trillion eBooks given away by year's end. The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away 1 Trillion eBooks! This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers, which is only about 4% of the present number of computer users. Here is the briefest record of our progress (* means estimated): eBooks Year Month 1 1971 July 10 1991 January 100 1994 January 1000 1997 August 1500 1998 October 2000 1999 December 2500 2000 December 3000 2001 November 4000 2001 October/November 6000 2002 December* 9000 2003 November* 10000 2004 January* The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been created to secure a future for Project Gutenberg into the next millennium. We need your donations more than ever! As of February, 2002, contributions are being solicited from people and organizations in: Alabama, Alaska, Arkansas, Connecticut, Delaware, District of Columbia, Florida, Georgia, Hawaii, Illinois, Indiana, Iowa, Kansas, Kentucky, Louisiana, Maine, Massachusetts, Michigan, Mississippi, Missouri, Montana, Nebraska, Nevada, New Hampshire, New Jersey, New Mexico, New York, North Carolina, Ohio, Oklahoma, Oregon, Pennsylvania, Rhode Island, South Carolina, South Dakota, Tennessee, Texas, Utah, Vermont, Virginia, Washington, West Virginia, Wisconsin, and Wyoming. We have filed in all 50 states now, but these are the only ones that have responded. As the requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be made and fund raising will begin in the additional states. Please feel free to ask to check the status of your state. In answer to various questions we have received on this: We are constantly working on finishing the paperwork to legally request donations in all 50 states. If your state is not listed and you would like to know if we have added it since the list you have, just ask. While we cannot solicit donations from people in states where we are not yet registered, we know of no prohibition against accepting donations from donors in these states who approach us with an offer to donate. International donations are accepted, but we don't know ANYTHING about how to make them tax-deductible, or even if they CAN be made deductible, and don't have the staff to handle it even if there are ways. Donations by check or money order may be sent to: Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation PMB 113 1739 University Ave. Oxford, MS 38655-4109 Contact us if you want to arrange for a wire transfer or payment method other than by check or money order. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation has been approved by the US Internal Revenue Service as a 501(c)(3) organization with EIN [Employee Identification Number] 64-622154. Donations are tax-deductible to the maximum extent permitted by law. As fund-raising requirements for other states are met, additions to this list will be made and fund-raising will begin in the additional states. We need your donations more than ever! You can get up to date donation information online at: http://www.gutenberg.net/donation.html *** If you can't reach Project Gutenberg, you can always email directly to: Michael S. Hart hart@pobox.com Prof. Hart will answer or forward your message. We would prefer to send you information by email. **The Legal Small Print** (Three Pages) ***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS**START*** Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers. They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with your copy of this eBook, even if you got it for free from someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how you may distribute copies of this eBook if you want to. *BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS EBOOK By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this eBook by sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person you got it from. If you received this eBook on a physical medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request. ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM EBOOKS This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBooks, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association (the "Project"). Among other things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this eBook under the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark. Please do not use the "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark to market any commercial products without permission. To create these eBooks, the Project expends considerable efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain works. Despite these efforts, the Project's eBooks and any medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other eBook medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment. LIMITED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below, [1] Michael Hart and the Foundation (and any other party you may receive this eBook from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm eBook) disclaims all liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES. If you discover a Defect in this eBook within 90 days of receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that time to the person you received it from. If you received it on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement copy. If you received it electronically, such person may choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to receive it electronically. THIS EBOOK IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS TO THE EBOOK OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A PARTICULAR PURPOSE. Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you may have other legal rights. INDEMNITY You will indemnify and hold Michael Hart, the Foundation, and its trustees and agents, and any volunteers associated with the production and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm texts harmless, from all liability, cost and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause: [1] distribution of this eBook, [2] alteration, modification, or addition to the eBook, or [3] any Defect. DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm" You may distribute copies of this eBook electronically, or by disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this "Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg, or: [1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the eBook or this "small print!" statement. You may however, if you wish, distribute this eBook in machine readable binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form, including any form resulting from conversion by word processing or hypertext software, but only so long as *EITHER*: [*] The eBook, when displayed, is clearly readable, and does *not* contain characters other than those intended by the author of the work, although tilde (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may be used to convey punctuation intended by the author, and additional characters may be used to indicate hypertext links; OR [*] The eBook may be readily converted by the reader at no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent form by the program that displays the eBook (as is the case, for instance, with most word processors); OR [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the eBook in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC or other equivalent proprietary form). [2] Honor the eBook refund and replacement provisions of this "Small Print!" statement. [3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Foundation of 20% of the gross profits you derive calculated using the method you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are payable to "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation" the 60 days following each date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare) your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return. Please contact us beforehand to let us know your plans and to work out the details. WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO? Project Gutenberg is dedicated to increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be freely distributed in machine readable form. The Project gratefully accepts contributions of money, time, public domain materials, or royalty free copyright licenses. Money should be paid to the: "Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation." If you are interested in contributing scanning equipment or software or other items, please contact Michael Hart at: hart@pobox.com [Portions of this eBook's header and trailer may be reprinted only when distributed free of all fees. Copyright (C) 2001, 2002 by Michael S. Hart. Project Gutenberg is a TradeMark and may not be used in any sales of Project Gutenberg eBooks or other materials be they hardware or software or any other related product without express permission.] *END THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN EBOOKS*Ver.02/11/02*END*